ABSTRACT Title of Document: BUREAUCRATIC DISCRETION: CITIZEN OFFICIALS AND THE CHOICE TO RESIST Christopher Andrew Hoffman, Doctor of Philosophy, 2014 Directed by: Prof. C. Alford, Department of Government and Politics In the realm of political theory, absolutism has largely dictated the conception of
bureaucratic duty. Thus the ideal has seen bureaucrats as bound to obey the dictates
of the sovereign, usually seen as the body that makes law. Empirical approaches to
public administration have, quite naturally, pointed out that human beings, even
bureaucrats, do not merely follow orders. Yet, even if one adopts an approach that
sees the problem in terms of principle and agent, the concern remains of ensuring that
the sovereign controls the official. I argue that this perspective has overshadowed the
republican tradition, which saw magistrates as citizens first. In other words, there is a
long tradition in political theory that offers scope for officials to exercise discretion
on behalf of their political communities through acts of positive resistance. Mere
passivity in the form of resignation or non-compliance is sometimes insufficient. A
republican conception of magistrates has long afforded these officials the capacity to
act on how they see things. The need for an emphasis on this approach increases as
the political community itself becomes increasingly incapable through lack of
knowledge or information of acting in its own interests. In fact, it sometimes happens
that officials alone possess the knowledge necessary to take action on behalf of the
community. The republican tradition provides a basis for rationalizing this in
theoretical terms once we accept that all officials today are both citizens and
magistrates in the traditional sense.
BUREAUCRATIC DISCRETION: CITIZEN OFFICIALS AND THE CHOICE TO RESIST
by
Christopher Andrew Hoffman
Dissertation submitted to the Faculty of the Graduate School of the University of Maryland, College Park, in partial fulfillment
of the requirements for the degree of Doctor of Philosophy
2014 Advisory Committee: Professor C. Alford, Chair Professor C. Butterworth Professor A. Eckstein Professor M. Rozenblit Professor I. Ward
ii
TABLE OF CONTENTS Chapter 1: Bureaucratic Discretion ………………………………………………....1 Chapter 2: Bureaucracy in the Polis, Real and Imagined…………………………..35 Chapter 3: Bureaucracy in the Res Publica, Real and Imagined…………………...75 Chapter 4: Modernity and Bureaucratic Servility………….……………………...109 Chapter 5: The Discretion of Citizens as Officials………………………………..163 Chapter 6: Conclusion…………………………………………………………….199 Bibliography………………………………………………………………….…...213
1
Chapter 1
Bureaucratic Discretion
In the modern world, where there is a state, there is bureaucracy.1 For more
than a century, the nature of bureaucracy has been seen something somehow contrary
to the nature of democracy; this has been called “the democratic paradox.”2 This is
basically a question of which body, the legislature or the bureaucracy, is the senior
partner within the state. Legislature, as the locus of popular sovereignty and the
means for expressing popular will is theoretically supreme, yet a number of issues,
such as bureaucracy’s relative permanence vis-à-vis the legislature, or the imbalance
in expertise between administrator and legislator, suggest that bureaucracy may not
be responsive, or may even dominate that relationship. While conceived in terms of
democracy, it is quite possible for such an imbalance to occur in other regimes as
well. This is because this really is a matter of the relationship between sovereign and
servant, be the sovereign legislature or king. Stated simply: is bureaucracy
independent or subordinate? The normative answer to this question, which is derived
from robust conceptions of sovereignty, generally insists that the bureaucracy should
be subservient. Such a position has implications for the individual bureaucrat’s role.
For individual officials, particularly those of middle and lower ranks, the
subordination instantiated by the relationship between bureaucracy and sovereign
1Cf. G. Poggi, The Development of the Modern State: A Sociological Introduction, Stanford, 1978, p. 1 2See, for example, W. Choung, Control Mechanisms Over Bureaucratic Power Expansion and a Tentative Model for the Comparative Study of Bureaucracy, Temple University, dissertation, 1980, pp. 1-7; McGregor, “Great Paradox of Citizenship and Public Personnel Administration,” Public Administration Review 44 (1984), pp. 126-35; B. Karl, “The American Bureaucrat: A History of a Sheep in Wolves’ Clothing,” Public Administration Review 47 (1987), pp. 26-34
2
produces a tension between an official’s potential exercise of private morality and his
institutional or functional obligation to carry out the instructions of legitimate
superiors. It has long been recognized, however, that this surrender of personal will
has its own consequences: it can lead to the claim that one is but a cog in a giant
machine, implying that the lowly official has no moral responsibility for his role in
implementing decisions of higher authorities, who ostensibly bear the responsibility.3
Instituting specific regulations and instructions to make explicit in legal form the
ethical obligations of individual public servants is one method of addressing this
problem. This approach, however, only serves to make more complete the
subordination of individual will within the bureaucratic context, as it relies upon and
confirms a principle of subordination in order to create within the public servant a
thoughtless habituation grounded in fear of punishment rather than a capacity for
discernment and judgment on the basis of any particular or coherent moral system.
Formal law, after all, is a means for minimizing an official’s discretion, which, to
some extent, is the crux of the matter. Moreover, there is something dubious about
regulation as an ethical method because ethics by rule or rote is really a kind of non-
ethics, or it is the appearance without the substance. For ethical practice itself is built
3This essentially is Weber’s formulation: “When, despite the arguments advanced by an official, his superior insists on the execution of an instruction which the official regards as mistaken, the official’s honour consists in being able to carry out that instruction, on the responsibility of the man issuing it, conscientiously and precisely in the same way as if it corresponded to his own convictions.” (emphasis in original) “The Profession and Vocation of Politics” in P. Lassman and R. Speirs, Weber: Political Writings, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2010 [1994], pp. 309-69, quotation at pp. 330-1 Cf. Schumpeter’s comments on the relationship between a citizen’s “effective will” and responsibility. J. Schumpeter, Capitalism, Socialism, and Democracy, New York, 1976 [1942], pp. 261-2.
3
upon thought and judgment, not habit and fear. Regulation is the opposite. It is itself
a means to subordinate the official to higher authority.
Until relatively recent times, political theory has not devoted much energy to
bureaucracy itself or the ethics of individual officials. Indeed, the views that have
shaped and continue to inform the ideology of the subordinated bureaucrat as servant,
have tended to downplay or disregard the role of an individual’s morality in deciding
whether or not to execute policy. Classical theory did not address bureaucracy
explicitly even though Athenians and Romans had public officials and bureaucracies;
its focus was more on the power of the state given the condition of ambitious men in
the service of the good life.4 When the ethical actions of political agents within the
government come in for discussion, Plato, Aristotle, and Cicero focused on the
characters and behaviors of the elite, not generally, and certainly not systematically,
on subordinates whose task was to carry out the will of their masters: the lowly
underling was not an ethical agent as his master’s judgment was what mattered.
Modern and contemporary political theory, when contemplating the role of officials,
often focuses on those of the highest rank and their subordination, collectively or
individually to the sovereign, be it the prince, the legislature, or the people. At every
step, the concerns range from depoliticizing administration, to limiting bureaucratic
discretion, to increasing the principle of rationality. Awareness that bureaucracy may
compete with the sovereign for power suggests the importance of ensuring a proper
4Obviously, it matters a great deal what period of time is being considered. The Athens of Pericles had public slaves, but not a fully developed system of administration comparable in scale or complexity to what existed in the Rome of Constantine. But these distinctions are not important for present purposes. Ancient bureaucracy will be addressed in Chapters 2 (Athens) and 3 (Rome).
4
relationship between sovereign master and bureaucratic servant, but frequently
modern political theory has not weighed the ethical choices or discretion of lower or
middle ranking officials.5 It is important to note that the generalizations made so far
concern normative political theory, not the kind of empirically informed approaches
that has come to the fore in fields such as public administration or sociology.
Weber, of course, is something of an éminence grise in the literature.
Whether one endorses his idealized conception of bureaucracy or opposes it, his
approach overshadows much of the literature on bureaucracy in the modern state.
Empirically motivated, sociologists, for example, have argued against Weber’s ideal
by offering up the behaviors of flesh-and-blood bureaucracies; and it has been
relatively easy to make the case that officials are not simply mindless robots, dutifully
carrying out orders to the letter. Actual human beings, after all, are variable, mostly
unpredictable, and far from mechanistic.6 But it is worth stressing the distance
between political theory and sociology. The former is normative, the latter,
ostensibly scientific. Thus, sociological scholarship’s normative commitment is to
observation, that is, the avoidance of an overt display of values in its analysis: it aims
to describe behaviors, not ethics. In public administration, which has laid claim to
science as a model, empiricism has similarly become the dominant method. Some
have drawn on economic theories of principal and agent as a framework for
5Protestant thinkers of the 16th century are a notable exception in that they made the case strongly for magisterial independence. R. Benert, Inferior Magistrates in Sixteenth-Century Political and Legal Thought, U. of Minn., dissertation, 1967; J. Franklin, ed., Constitutionalism and Resistance in the Sixteenth Century: Three Treatises by Hotman, Beza, & Mornay, New York, 1969 6If it were otherwise, rational choice would be far more effective than it is at explaining voter behavior. B. Caplan, The Myth of the Rational Voter, Princeton, 2007
5
explaining the actions of officials.7 Others have collated measures of various sorts to
test bureaucratic responsiveness.8 Even these and similar approaches, while all aimed
at formulating and testing hypotheses about the real world, or gathering data about
actual human beings, nonetheless quite frequently display a debt to Weber:
fundamentally, they often either seek to disprove Weber’s ideal concept, or test its
validity.9 In this way, he continues to cast a long shadow over subsequent students of
bureaucracy.
While the present study fits within the tradition of those scholars who have
written about the ethical behavior of officials, its contribution consists in its focus on
the basis provided by political theory for the exercise of discretion by mid- and lower-
ranked officials using moral systems external to the institutions where they find
themselves. That is, individual citizens serving the public as members of the
bureaucracy need not check their status as citizens at the door once they become
public servants. The aim, however, is not to prescribe the content of that morality or
declare what particular conceptions of right should sway an official’s actions, but
rather to argue that, whatever the content, individual morality can serve to temper
pressures to conform and serve: an official cannot be a mere instrument of authority,
even legitimate authority.10 This is a normative argument grounded in traditional
views about magistrates, not a set of hypotheses designed to explain observed official
7For example, W. Niskanen, Bureaucracy and Representative Government, New Brunswick, 2007 [1971] 8B. Wood and R. Waterman, “The Dynamics of Political Control of the Bureaucracy,” American Political Science Review 85.3 (Sep., 1991), pp. 801-28 9See, for example, A. Gouldner’s Patterns of Industrial Bureaucracy, New York, 1964 [1954] 10Cf. Rousseau’s concept of volonté de corps, Ch. 4, infra.
6
behavior, and it posits that the beneficial role of individual ethics rests on two
principles: first, the importance of the official’s status as a citizen and his connection
to his fellows within a political community; second, the centrality of individual
thought and judgment to the application of personal morality in specific
circumstances.
Ancient political theory and practice draws our attention to a role for ethics
within a political context that took as a given the individual’s relation to others, that
is, the condition of plurality. The social nature of the political community leaves an
individual not unbound, but tied specifically to his community. Ethics and duties are
social. This emphasis on the individual actor as a person linked reciprocally to those
around him stands partly in contrast with the modern condition where these bonds are
frequently broken or mitigated, partly as a reminder of the important role that social
connection plays in mediating, expressing, and reifying ethical conduct.11 Modern
theorists, Machiavelli, most famously, have despaired of thinking about the moral
content that ought to motivate men in a polity, gradually segregating ethics from
politics because, perhaps, of the inability to define morality; speaking in broadest
terms, modern theory has focused on power and authority in conceiving political
relations, first among individual leading men, later among institutions.12 Seeing
officials as moral agents in the manner advanced here represents a devolution of the
ethical dimensions of sovereignty to those middle and low ranking functionaries
11Cf. B. Constant’s analysis of the difference between ancient and modern liberty. “The Liberty of the Ancients Compared with that of the Moderns,” in B. Fontana, Constant: Political Writings, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2006 [1988], pp. 308-28 12Consider Rawls who posits justice as fairness ex nihilo, but more or less declares off limits in political discourse much of what motivates most people to have an opinion in the first place: morality. A Theory of Justice, Cambridge, 1999 [1971]
7
tasked with executing policy. On this understanding, the modern practice of
delineating ethics for officials through regulatory means, because it relies upon fear
of punishment, represents not true ethics, but a continuation of the ancient idea of
superstition as a technique of control.13 This is a denial of ethics in any meaningful
sense of the word as it maintains the sovereign’s monopoly of moral agency. The
present study is a denial of that monopoly.
Scholars of bureaucracy often cite Weber as a kind of metonym for their topic
without much further explication.14 Given the broad acceptance of Weber’s
comments as a starting point, this is both convenient and reasonable. Yet, before
considering what he says, it is useful to offer a few comments regarding the word
itself and its history. Weber’s purpose is to analyze bureaucracy in the value-free
manner of a sociologist, but language as it is actually used is often more explicit
about its value judgments. First, bureaucracy is about power. The word enters
English in the 19th century as a foreign import with largely negative implications.15
On the one hand, the Oxford English Dictionary’s earliest citation is John Stuart
Mill’s use in the mid-19th century; on the other, the Historical Thesaurus of the
13Superstition (deisidaimonia) was originally a pejorative word, indicating an excessive fear of the divine. Theophrastus presents the locus classicus for this in Characteres 16. H. Diels, Theophrasti Characteres, OCT, Oxford, 1909 Polybius, however, identifies superstition as a positive means of social control. Histories 6.56.6ff. Paton, W., trans., Polybius: The Histories, LCL 138, Cambridge, 1979 [1923], p. 394ff. 14But see Choung’s very useful discussion of the word. See, op. cit., pp. 11-3 and 38. 15The negative valence is not a modern phenomenon, pace W. Niskanen, op. cit., p. 6; for the history and various meanings, see C. Emge, “Bürokratisierung,” Kölner Zeitschrift für Soziologie und Sozialpscyhologie (1950-1), pp. 179-95
8
Oxford English Dictionary dates an unattributed citation even earlier, to 1818.16 Both
books make clear that the connotation was largely negative, with its emphasis on the
bureaucrat’s arbitrary use of power or on bureaucracy’s power to obstruct. Perhaps,
this reflects a particularly English conception. The OED’s spare definition glosses
over the connotations of its citations thus: “government by bureaux.” The New
Oxford American Dictionary, however, defines bureaucracy in terms of the balance of
power between officialdom and legislature by characterizing it as a governmental
system in which decisions are made by “officials rather than by elected
representatives.”17 This emphasis on power is integral to the origin of the word itself,
with the etyma, bureau and cratia, making it clear that bureaucracy is fundamentally
an expression of power wielded by bureaux.18 Furthermore, the term suggests a
realization or, perhaps, frustration with the status of administrators as an independent
body of actors within a government. This is, after all, the fairly general view of many
in France during the period immediately preceding the revolution and after. Indeed,
the term was coined to highlight the idea that bureaux had replaced one man
(monarchy) or the people (democracy) with their own rule. And this concern remains
to this day. The comparatively recent appearance of the word means that earlier
16Compact Edition of the Oxford English Dictionary, Oxford, 1981, svv.. bureaucracy and bureaucrat; Historical Thesaurus of the Oxford English Dictionary, Oxford, 2009, sv., office, 3.04.07 (18) and holder of office, 3.04.07.01 (24). F. Riggs, “Introduction: shifting meanings of the term ‘bureaucracy’,” International Social Science Journal/Revue international des sciences sociales 31.4 (1979), pp. 563-84 The word makes its first recorded appearance in mid-18th century French, perhaps with Vincent de Gournay; it migrates into German towards the end of the 18th century. See F. Kluge and A. Götze, Etymologisches Wörterbuch der deutschen Sphrache, Berlin, 1953, s.v., büro. 17New Oxford American Dictionary, New York, 2001, sv., bureaucracy. 18The word’s polemical connotation is noted by F. Morstein-Marx in The Administrative State, Chicago, 1957, pp. 17-8.
9
writers in thinking about bureaucracies will have referred by other means to this body
of officials working on behalf of the government.
Prior to the appearance of bureaucracy, theorists might speak magistrates,
ministers, or officials.19 To get at the idea of officialdom itself, writers either focused
rather neutrally on the collective body of officials itself, e.g., administration, or the
individual offices and persons who carried out the duties required of them by their
position in government. Now, the French word, administration, does not suggest the
same ideas that bureaucracy does, nor does gouvernement. Indeed, whereas
bureaucracy evinces a sense of power, perhaps even illegitimate power,
administration incorporates the very idea of servitude. In Classical Latin,
administratio refers simply to the carrying out of functions without any stress on the
power involved.20 This relatively neutral sense, retained in English and French,
sometimes requires characterization as bad or good administration to make clear a
thinker’s particular attitude towards a given situation.21 But who but ministers would
carry out these tasks of administratio? Hence the idea of subordination that is built
into the concept. The word, minister, originally applied to the minion of a superior,
that is, someone who served as an instrument of his superior’s will. The idea that
administration was about subservience is paralleled elsewhere. In German, for
example, the word, Beamter, has this idea at its origin.22 This merely serves to
highlight the fact that individuals, who were part of government’s administrative
19Of course, such terms continue to exist side by side with bureaucracy itself. 20See, for example, Oxford Latin Dictionary, Oxford, 1982, sv., administratio. To be sure, the word, minister, implies a power relationship, but administratio as an abstract noun does not directly convey this as a review of the OLD entry shows. 21Cf. H. Horwill, Modern American Usage, Oxford, 1946, s.v., administration. 22Götze, Wörterbuch, s.v., Amt.
10
staff, were generally seen as servants. Magistrates, of course, originally were
officials: free citizens of the Roman Republic with specific authorities. But this word
too eventually comes to refer to officials within the government, and they too,
according to Bodin, following a tradition of Roman imperial law when the offices of
the Republic were vestigially retained under the empire, were subject to sovereign
authority. But the interesting development here is the split between magistrates, to
whose duties ancient political theory did turn its attention, and their servants whom it
generally ignored. Both these categories collapsed under the Roman Empire so that
Bodin, for example, could make of them servants to the sovereign.
Weber’s conceptualization of bureaucracy, the one most frequently used
implicitly or explicitly as modern scholarship’s starting point, is most fully stated in
Economy and Society.23 Consciously using modern bureaucracy as an ideal type
against which others are compared,24 Weber emphasizes several features as the marks
of true bureaucracy, variously described as the “institutional-legal,” “rational-legal,”
23G. Roth and C. Wittich, edd., Economy and Society, Berkeley, 1978, v. 2, Ch. 11. Weber writes of bureaucracy elsewhere. See, for example, “Parliament and Government in Germany under a New Political Order” and “The Profession and Vocation of Politics” in Lassman, op. cit. Weber is so well-know that scholars often glibly refer to his model. Cf. J. Huber and C. Shipan, Deliberative Discretion?, Cambridge, 2002, pp. 17-8. 24On this method, see Aron’s discussion of Weber’s methodology in R. Aron, Les étapes de la pensée sociologique, Paris, 1967, p. 511ff. He notes the problem with extracting a type from historical sources and then reapplying it to history. But it is more interesting to note that Aron does not point out the methodological incongruity between the use of history to say something about past human behavior and the modern practice of turning to mathematics for contemporary sociological analysis. At some level, these are incompatible methods, yet generalizations for comparison emerge all the same.
11
or “formal-legal” model.25 Accordingly, Weber identifies the following criteria for
bureaucracy: 1) abstract law; 2) consistency; 3) hierarchy; 4) impersonality; 5)
specification of competence; 6) salaries; 7) writing; 8) career; 9) discipline; 10)
expertise; and 11) formalism.26 In sum, Weber says, bureaucracy is “fundamentally
domination through knowledge.”27
Weber’s use of the modern condition, characterized above all by the fact of
capitalism, to put forward an ideal type urges upon him a distinction between the
modern, rational-legal bureaucratic system, and its historical antecedents.28 The
relationship between the modern economy and bureaucracy is so central to his
approach that he as at pains to explain, or explain away, ancient bureaucracies, such
as the Egyptian, which he was forced to concede, however reluctantly, was nearly
bureaucratic.29 Elsewhere, he introduces the idea of patrimonialism as a category for
classifying earlier systems as other than modern.30 This typology emphasizes the role
25On Weber’s use of the modern system as a point of comparison, see, Economy, p. 217. For “institutional legal,” see J. Dobel, Bureaucratic Integrity, Baltimore, 1999, p. 10; “rational legal,” see Suleiman, op. cit, p. 27; “formal legal,” see J. Burke, Bureaucratic Responsibility, Baltimore, 1986, p. 10. Of course, “rational-legal” is Weber’s own formulation. 26Economy, pp. 217-26. Identifying a number of these features with bureaucracy is not unique to Weber. Although he might have, Weber does not cite Mill on the topic, but in his discussion of the political executive the latter’s exposition of how the civil service ought to function anticipates much of Weber. Considerations on Representative Government, Chicago, 1962, Ch. 14, p. 259ff. Weber does reference Mill in his essay, “Between Two Laws,” in Writings, pp. 78-9. 27Economy, pp. 227 and 956ff. 28Economy, p. 964. 29ibid. 30By arguing that bureaucracy existed and grew as a strategy to bolster central authority, Strayer implicitly sees bureaucracy differently than Weber. J. Strayer, On the Medieval Origins of the Modern State, Princeton, 2005. While Weber emphasizes the role of technology and economy in the rise of bureaucracy, Strayer emphasizes the monarchy’s competition with rival estates.
12
of sociologically private relations in earlier administrative arrangements, unlike
modern, rational-legal systems that are marked by impersonality and formality.31
Thus, the modern official surrenders his will to legitimate authority (sovereignty) as a
matter of political duty or mere professionalism, while his earlier analogue, to the
extent that he actually did what he was told, performed his duty because of a social
relationship with his superior. One might paraphrase by saying that under traditional
systems, officialdom was an organization of clients serving patrons: “…the position
of the official derives from his purely personal submission to the ruler…. it is rather a
servant’s loyalty based on a strictly personal relationship to the ruler and an
obligation of fealty….”32
Whatever Weber’s theoretical limitations, he was quite correct to emphasize
the modern problem of bureaucratic subordination. At any rate, Weber’s typology is
a useful point of departure, although not all of his criteria are necessary to thinking
about bureaucracy as a problem of political theory. To know a bureaucracy, one need
only recognize that it is an organization of people built on the principle of hierarchy
and oriented towards the execution of governmental tasks to be carried out by
officials whose duty it is to perform them. Obviously, corporations and other bodies
can have bureaucracies, but the interest here are bureaucracies that reify for most
citizens the world over their government. After all, where the sovereign cannot be
31Economy, p. 1028-31 Curiously, Weber characterizes the administration of Ptolemaic Egypt as a “coincidence of bureaucracy and natural economy” only later to insist that the Egyptian system too is patrimonial, functioning, even at this late date, as the “royal oikos.” op. cit, p. 964 and 1047. 32op. cit., pp. 1030-1. And yet, once the nation seizes the throne, the notion of democratic control, despite concepts of meritocracy and professionalism, still demands the loyalty due the “royal oikos.”
13
everywhere at once, he must depend upon officials to carry out his will. Organized in
a body, these officials are bureaucracy, however nascent or inchoate by modern
standards. Whether an official’s obligations are personal or legal makes little
difference as in either case he is theoretically bound to fulfill duties imposed on him
by someone else.33 In other words, bureaucracy’s operative principle, modern or not,
is servility, that is, service to a master. To be sure, this notion has been challenged in
various ways. Sociologists, with Weber specifically in mind, have shown that
bureaucracy in practice does not faithfully adhere to a mechanistic ideal. Gouldner,
for example, in his study of bureaucratic control at an American gypsum plant,
showed that bureaucracy actually runs into all kinds of trouble when workers are
unwilling to follow procedures deemed inappropriate to their circumstances.34 Burns
in his examination of Scotland’s post-war electronics industry reported that non-
technical factors such as status or “turf” could affect a company’s ability to operate
according to purely hierarchical methods.35 Political scientists too have also taken
their crack at Weber’s ideal type. Warwick examined how US State Department
officials could undermine and undo programs introduced by their superiors.36 Zegart
emphasized the lack of legislative incentives to oversee an intelligence community
that succeeds in getting perhaps too much of what it wants.37 Carpenter traced the
33The sovereign may be unbound, but the official in theory was not. On the theory of the sovereign legibus solutus, see J. Elshtain, Sovereignty: God, State, and Self, New York, 2008, pp. 61-2. 34Gouldner, op. cit. 35T. Burns, The Management of Innovation, Oxford, 1961 36D. Warwick, A Theory of Public Bureaucracy: Politics, Personality, and Organization in the State Department, Cambridge, 1979. 37A. Zegart, Flawed by Design: The Evolution of the CIA, JCS, and NSC, Stanford, 1999, and Eyes on Spies, Stanford, 2010.
14
historical development of bureaucratic independence as the result of a variety of
factors, including the recruitment of the citizenry over and against the legislature.38
From a different perspective, Kingsley argued that bureaucrats in the United
Kingdom reflected their masters, not because of Weberian duty, but because they
were drawn from the same social strata.39 Niskanen, taking economics as a reference,
argued that bureaucrats engage in rational choice and strive for utility maximization.40
It turns out, unsurprisingly, that the real world is more complex and varied than the
ideal. Nevertheless, while these and other approaches do say something of value
about how bureaucracy is actually practiced, each simply reflects a particular focus
whether it be the relation between official and superior or bureaucracy and overseer,
and, in the end, they do not invalidate Weber as a useful starting point. Indeed, only a
rational choice theorist could fault Weber for not being one as well. To some extent,
these studies of actual practice are interesting precisely because they use Weber as a
basis of comparison. Without the Weberian type, their results might simply be
puzzling and solipsistic. Therefore, it is worth stressing that Weber animates the
literature, attesting to the value of what he proposed, whether as an object of criticism
or a basis of understanding.41 Furthermore, to argue that Weber’s basic points were
invalidated by actual practice would be akin to suggesting that the ideal democracy
loses its value, the less it resembles actual democracies.42 Clearly the communis
38D. Carpenter, The Forging of Bureaucratic Autonomy, Princeton, 2001. 39J. Kingsley, Representative Bureaucracy: An Interpretation of the British Civil Service, Yellow Springs, 1944. 40Niskanen, op. cit. 41This is the Bakhtinian dialogic at work. 42Indeed, for all the emphasis Bauman places on the centrality of the German bureaucracy to the holocaust, one would expect that it too functioned imperfectly. Z.
15
opinio, evident to even the casual observer of scholarship in actual practice, is that
Weber got something right in his articulation, and the investigation of actual practice
is interesting precisely because it differs from the ideal.43 For the present purpose the
basic implication of Weber’s ideal, subordination organized for the accomplishment
of tasks defined by an authority, will do.44 This means that servility is a bureaucratic
virtue.
Calling servility a bureaucratic virtue may at first glance appear objectionable.
In particular, the modern West with its emphasis on equality and liberty would
suggest an explicit opposition to the notion of slavishness within its officials.45 But
Bauman, Modernity and the Holocaust, Ithaca, 1991. The incommeasurability problem that exists in using the real to invalidate the ideal will be taken up below. 43To the extent that bureaucracies have an initial moment, it is clear that they take on a life of their own and remain fundamentally undesigned. They respond to and interact with their environments. This is one of the points made by Burns. Thus, if even the founding moment represents an ideal from the perspective of the founder, it is clear that with the passage of time practice and circumstance will produce an unintended kind of organization, one that is not ideal by the standard of its originator. 44At one level, much modern scholarship, with its reliance on quantitative analysis, is incommeasurable with Weber’s approach. It is not as though the sociological statements of Weber or others of his genre could be subject to falsification in the manner that Popper finds to be the hallmark of true science: the laws of human behavior remain to be discovered. 45Cf. the opposition between the principles of a democratic society and bureaucratic duty discussed in K. Denhardt, “The Management of Ideals: A Political Perspective on Ethics,” Public Administration Review, 49.2 (1989), pp. 187-93. J. Worthy argued this very point in Big Business and Free Men, New York, 1959. He is perhaps the most blunt exponent of what seems a Zeitgeist of the 1950s, namely, a desire to argue for individuals in the face of collectivities. This is no accident in the context of the Cold War. Cf. Stahl’s observation that “[t]he government employee’s democratic impulses can hardly be strengthened if undemocratic practices govern his life….” O. Stahl, “Democracy and Public Employee Morality,” Annals of the Academy of Political and Social Science 297 (Jan., 1955), pp. 90-7, quotation at p. 95a. In fiction, the protagonist of The Shrinking Man (1956), Scott Carey, simply wonders as he heads towards oblivion: “Was he a separate, meaningful person; was he an individual? Did he matter? Was it enough just to survive?” R. Matheson, The
16
this is perhaps only because it too bluntly states what, in fact, is required by a
bureaucratic hierarchy. The very idea, frequently put forth, that the legislature should
wield the bureaucracy as an instrument of its will suggests as much. Otherwise the
idea of a paradox between bureaucratic independence and legislative authority has no
meaning: the concern is to rein in bureaucracy for the faithful execution of what the
legislature as the people’s representative decides. Linguistically speaking, this aspect
was not always so hidden or troubling. In the late Roman empire, the bureaucracy
was often referred to as militia, a military service. The word, service, itself is cognate
with the Latin word for slave, servus. It is only over time that the implicit idea of
slavery or slavishness has been masked in practice; it lingers all the same. Citizens
mostly want their public servants to carry out policy as directed, not according to
their individual whims, no matter how problematic this might be.46 That modern
states no longer rely upon slaves or freedmen to staff government represents a social
change of great importance, but the principle not only survives, it is a necessary
condition, however etiolated, to the function of bureaucracy.
This principle of servility exists in tension with two related aspects of
bureaucracy, delegation and discretion. It is not necessary to enter into the legal
aspects of delegation in the sense of what a legislature can or cannot delegate to the
executive within the context of separation of powers, usually expressed as the
Shrinking Man, in G. Wolfe, ed., American Science Fiction: Four Novels 1953-1956, Library of America, New York, 2012, p. 634 46“I insist on subservience,” writes Finer. His article about administrative responsibility is filled with the language of mastery and subservience. H. Finer, “Administrative Responsibility in Democratic Government,” Public Administration Review 1.4 (1941), pp. 335-50, quotation from p. 339b.
17
principle of non-delegation.47 It is enough to acknowledge that the very idea that the
sovereign or legislature decides and the administration executes entails an act of
delegation, this is the basic idea that a principal assigns tasks to a subordinate agent.
Bureaucrats thus tasked are fiduciaries with an obligation to fulfill the tasks assigned
to them as explicitly directed either by the superior assigning the task or according to
abstract standards whether articulated by rules and regulations, oaths, community
standards, or other means. In essence, the principal cannot be everywhere at once
and cannot perform all tasks himself.48 Therefore, if he is sovereign, he turns to his
government; if he is a senior official, he turns to a staff of subordinates, assigning
them what he cannot carry out by himself. In the execution of these tasks, officials
may or may not exercise their discretion. The degree of discretion employed
doubtless relates to the level of detail contained in the instructions describing the task.
Yet in the Weberian conception, the ideal official or staffer, who advises before the
decision is made, carries out his superior’s will with as much conviction as if the
course of action were the result of his own decision.49 He becomes a pure instrument
of the superior’s will. Although discretion must, as a practical matter, enter into the
47This doctrine finds a historical origin in Roman law, but its political source for American jurisprudence is Locke. H. Ehmke, “‘Delegata Potestas Non Potest Delegari:’ A Maxim of American Constitutional Law,” Cornell Law Quarterly 47 (1961-2), pp. 50-60; Mistretta v. United States, 488 US 361, where the Supreme Court held that the legislature’s delegation is subject to the “intelligible principle” test, meaning that the legislature must provide a minimum of guidance for the executor of delegated authority (p. 372ff.); A. Ziaja, “Hot Oil and Hot Air: The Development of the Nondelegation Doctrine through the New Deal, A History 1813-1944,” Hastings Con. Law Quarterly 35 (2008), p. 921ff.. 48Principal in the present context is not meant to imply the sense used in principal-agent theory as derived from economic analysis of the firm. K. Eisenhardt, “Agency Theory: An Assessment and Review,” Academy of Management Review 14.1 (1989), pp. 57-74. 49See, fn. 3, supra.
18
execution of any policy, the ideal takes the principal to be the one exercising
discretion, the subordinate serving as his instrument. This is why the principal,
according to Weber, has the responsibility: it is he who must answer, not the
subordinate. Now, the real world discretion of officials poses a problem precisely
because it can result in choice wrongly exercised. When officials use discretion for
their own ends, this is often seen as corruption. But one need not focus on corruption
for the moment: rather, it is worth noting that acts of misused discretion may be
addressed by social, i.e, personal, means in those organizations identified by Weber
as pre-bureaucratic, or legally and impersonally in those identified as rational-legal.50
Both cases reaffirm the principle of subordination within the hierarchy.
Appropriateness is judged on the basis of acts in relation to delegated authority: one
may not do other than what is authorized. The principle of servility is reinforced, and
it is integral to the assumed operation of bureaucracy, whether as generally conceived
or as posited by theorists concerned about legislative control in democracies.51
Indeed, the desire for the perfectly reliable performance of tasks finds its day-to-day
culmination in the use of red-light cameras, which automatically, meaning without
any discretion at all, ticket drivers who fail to stop. While in each individual case a
police officer tasked with issuing tickets will, in fact, use his discretion, perhaps
ticketing one driver, but letting another off with a warning, the red-light camera,
which can only function on the basis of rules that are so decontextualized that they
50On discretion as a problem, see S. Rose-Ackerman, Corruption and Government, Cambridge, 1999, pp. 39 and 62; M. Warren, “What Does Corruption Mean in a Democracy?,” American Journal of Political Science 48.2 (2004), pp. 328-43. 51This is the oversight problem taken up by Zegart, for example. See also Huber and Shipan, op. cit., pp. 18-22 and E. Suleiman, Dismantling Democratic States, Princeton, 2003, pp. 32-8.
19
allow for no mitigating factors, succeeds in eliminating completely any such
messiness, ensuring that all drivers are equally subject to its ever-watchful eye. The
camera is the ideal official.52
The red light camera that automatically issues tickets impersonally and
without discrimination is a mechanical official, who under no circumstances
introduces private values into the execution of duty.53 Where the human official, be
he an actual slave in the ancient world, or an agent tasked with carrying out
instructions faithfully and in obedience to superiors in the modern, may experience
his subordination in relation to legal or social strictures, but always filtered through
his own will to act, the machine is all the more faithful as a bureaucratic instrument
precisely because it removes any risk that considerations exterior to the bureaucracy
itself as expressed in rules might deflect the execution of policy from its generally
defined and originally conceived purpose. The machine’s and the bureaucracy’s
morality are one. The machine’s subordination is organic to its nature. The human
being in actual practice, no matter his bureaucratic rank or social status, always
threatens to introduce personal considerations -- not to mention his level of
competence and expertise -- that may contaminate his sense of duty, as a subordinate,
to carry out his tasks. While this is frequently seen as a problem, the present study
argues that this circumstance is a theoretical desideratum for bureaucratic practice
52Cf. L. Winner, Autonomous Technology: Technics-out-of-Control as a Theme in Political Thought, Cambridge, 1992 [1977], pp. 20-1; W. Wallach and C. Allen, Moral Machines: Teaching Robots Right from Wrong, Oxford, 2009 53Comparing kamikazes with armed drones, G. Chamayou observes, “Ce que les premiers (sc., les japonais) espéraient atteindre par l’entraînement psychologique, il va s’agir pour les seconds (sc., les américains) par des procédés purement techniques.” “A chacun son arme: drone et kamikaze, jeu de miroirs,” Le monde diplomatique, April 2013, p. 3.
20
within democracy despite the fact that bureaucratic subordination is seen as
something integral to sovereignty.
But what is meant by morality, and what is its relationship to ethics? The two
concepts can easily become muddled, but perhaps their relationship to each other can
provide a basis for distinguishing.54 Ethics is the specific, morality the general. On
this understanding, ethics is casuistry, although not in the pejorative sense. Rather,
individuals may apply morality, whatever its content, to specific cases: that
application is realized as ethics.55 Indeed, absent specific cases, morality may
actually be of little relevance to anyone’s life. Ethics are the practical and real
expression of private, if not universal, morality within the context of a human
54M. Midgley explicitly refrains from distinguishing morality from ethics in her article, “The Origin of Ethics.” (p. 3) in P. Singer, ed., A Companion to Ethics, Oxford, 2000, pp. 3-13. Others may speak of morality without making clear the distinction between principle and practice. See, for example, S. Wolf, “Moral Saints,” Journal of Philosophy, 79.8 (1982), pp. 419-39. Also, M. Quinlan, “Just Intelligence: Prolegomena to an Ethical Theory,” in P. Hennessy, ed., The New Protective State: Government, Intelligence, and Terrorism, London, 2007, pp. 123-41. Quinlan, who admits to lacking specific expertise in ethics, nonetheless, is useful in showing how even in circles outside moral philosophy, the distinction between morality and ethics all but disappears. 55Making a universalist claim about the content of morality is not only difficult, it may simply be impossible in the present day. G. Anscombe, “Modern Moral Philosophy,” Philosophy 33 (1958), pp. 1-19; K. Appiah, Experiments in Ethics, Cambridge, 2008; B. Gregory, The Unintended Reformation, Cambridge, 2012, Ch. 4. Indeed, the vast number of modern approaches, many incommeasurable with each other, speak to a kind of aporia in determining the nature of morality. In public administration scholarship, it becomes very unclear where morality, even institutional morality, ends and ethical practice begins. Consider the use of “ethics” in, for example, P. Douglas, “Improvement of Ethical Standards in the Federal Government: Problems and Proposals,” Annals of the American Academy of Political and Social Science 280 (1952), pp. 149-57; P. Monypenny, “The Control of Ethical Standards in the Public Service,” Annals of the American Academy of Political and Social Science 297 (1955), pp. 98-104. Nor is it enough to say that ethics is about doing the right thing. What is the right thing in a plural society which lacks a common moral language?
21
community. Thus, morality is to the self, what ethics are to the other. The former,
inward-looking, the latter outward. This is the understanding here.
Leaving aside, then, the particular morality held by any one individual, the
application of that morality to a particular case, the ethical act, implies a number of
instrumental preconditions. For one must know when and how to apply a moral
principle. Ethics thus presupposes the use of discernment and judgment. One must
hold a conception of what the particular case is, engage oneself inwardly about its
nature, and judge the application of morality to it.56 This is what Arendt means when
she speaks of thought.57 To exercise thought requires the conscious analysis of
circumstances, both as they are outside the individual and as they relate to the
individual within. This is distinct from groupthink, in which the individual is
suppressed by the leveling effects of the team where he plays a role, or the
organization as tribe.58 For an official within a bureaucracy, this is not merely a
matter of using criteria supplied by the organization itself, but also the decision to
participate in the application of those criteria. To implement those criteria without
considering what it means personally for the official himself as a human being or
even as a citizen within a polity where they are applied, is an act of thoughtlessness.59
This is what Arendt had in mind when she famously and controversially judged
56A. Applebaum, Ethics for Adversaries, Princeton, 1999, p. 219. 57Thought has a complex role and at times a slippery meaning in Arendt’s work. Yet its interiority and its relation to activity are consistent themes. The Human Condition, New York, 1959, pp. 4, 82-3, and 147-51; “Thinking and Moral Considerations: A Lecture,” Social Research 38.3 (1971), pp. 417-46. 58On the ideology of the team and its effects, see W. Whyte, The Organization Man, New York, 1956. 59Access to information is critical to this process, and the more fragmentary the information, the more limited the capacity to exercise judgment as there may end up being little to judge. See, Winner, op. cit., pp. 301-5.
22
Eichmann to have been a fundamentally thoughtless person.60 This thoughtlessness,
triggered in part by a modest conception of the bureaucratic self as being of
insufficient rank to challenge the decisions of superiors, or, as Weber would have it,
of being obliged to carry out one’s tasks regardless of whatever reservations an
official may have, is, in fact, a necessary component of an official’s self-
instrumentalization within the hierarchical strictures of bureaucracy. The
60Arendt has come in for a great deal of criticism for her treatment of Eichmann. But focusing on whether or not she was wrong about this or that historical detail, or whether she attended the entire trial, or sufficiently acknowledged Eichmann’s agency is really to miss completely or consciously to disregard her broader and more interesting point about the importance of thought as an ethical component of bureaucratic action. For Arendt, Eichmann as a historical figure is secondary to her theoretical concerns about moral agency. After all, even accepting every criticism leveled at her reportage leaves unaddressed the philosophical and ethical importance of her analysis. Eichmann and the Holocaust, Harmondsworth, 2006; D. Cesarani, Becoming Eichmann: Rethinking the Life, Crimes, and Trial of a “Desk Murderer”, Cambridge, 2004; B. Gewen, “Becoming Eichmann by David Cesarani; The Everyman of Genocide,” New York Times, May 14, 2006. Cesarani faults Arendt for a number of reasons, including her philosophical commitments, but does not seem to see his own commitments as a problem. This also leads him to dispose of Bauman by vaguely arguing against the validity of Stanley Milgram’s famous experiments, yet Bauman’s argument does not hang solely on Milgram. (p. 354) Cesarani’s own understanding of the role of thought within Arendt’s philosophy appears rather incomplete: his various comments suggest that he understands it only in the ordinary sense of common speech. (see p. 11, for example) In other words, whatever subtlety there is in Arendt on this matter, the significance of “thoughtlessness” for her is for him boiled down to “unthinking” nearly in the sense of being careless or distracted: this misses the point, as though she meant that Eichmann just failed to notice what was happening. That is not what she means by thoughtlessness. More importantly, his approach allows him to sidestep the role of obedience in bureaucracy. To be sure, there is an important point here: the relationship between obedience and responsibility, and it seems clear that Cesarani’s project is to assign responsibility. But there is an unacknowledged incompatibility of approaches: the real and the ideal. Arendt’s concerns are fundamentally on the level of the ideal, Cesarani’s the real. And yet, Cesarani veers into generalization himself: “Nor were the Nazis merely taking orders.” (p. 355) “Every single one of them? Without exception?,” one might ask. So general a proposition is impossible to make in any zealous commitment to “facts.” Such a commitment leaves this question open to the investigation of each individual.
23
bureaucratic principle is that one’s moral agency is proscribed by one’s subordinate
role. In this sense, private morality and private ethics theoretically have no actual
place in a servile conception of bureaucracy. Morality and ethics are for superiors, or
perhaps a legislature, but not for simple officials whose duty consists in the faithful
implementation of policy. Again, the red-light cameras appear as a perfect
technological realization of bureaucracy in that such devices are amoral and non-
ethical. The ethics of the camera are the responsibility of those who determine
policy, not the device that carries it out, just as Weber’s superior official, when
disregarding the advance of his staff, retains responsibility for decisions. But this is
the level where ethics can actually take on greater significance: the lower the rank of
the individual official, potentially the greater the direct impact to be had on behalf of
his fellow citizens.
An important aspect of the distinction between morality and ethics arises in
relation to society. Here the point is that morality remains entirely private until it
becomes a source of action. And action, in an ethical sense, relates to one’s condition
as a member of a social group. Ethics derive their meaning in relation to another
person: the other person is constitutive of the case to which morality is applied. An
individual could remain moral, if he remained entirely by himself, unconnected to his
fellow human beings.61 But, as Aristotle observed, human beings live in
communities, or, to follow Arendt, in a condition of plurality. To put it differently,
morality applied to human interaction and relationships is the substance of ethics. If
morality was once divine whereas now it is merely set of abstract preferences, ethics
61This is not a reference to some hypothetical state of nature.
24
remains human. In this way, ethics fundamentally relates to one’s connections within
society. Kant urges that people should be treated as ends rather than means; ethics
constitutes how that works out in individual cases. Thus, ethics are the stuff of
human relations. An obvious implication is that conditions of alienation or social
fragmentation undermine ethics.62
Of course, when ethics are framed in these terms, being, as they are,
dependent on thought as an activity within the sphere of human relations, the question
naturally arises as to whether true ethics can arise from habituation. Is ethical
behavior ethics?63 Is ethics purely a matter of the act itself? The perspective taken
here is that true ethics must involve thought. In other words, it is the result of a
process internal to the individual that is evaluative, and not the product of mere habit.
To be sure, the distinction between a truly ethical act and one that appears to be so
may, in fact, be something that makes no difference to the outside observer, or to a
political community. It may be that training individuals to behave in a particular
manner, as though they were ethical by virtue of that behavior, would be sufficient,
and that, indeed, is the approach taken in modern bureaucracies. Indeed, it evokes the
utility of superstition that Polybius highlighted in his discussion of the Roman
Republic. It is possible that an official’s sincerity or understanding or intelligence
may generally be of little immediate significance, but within the bureaucratic context
62Cf. “It is a tragedy of moral history that the expansion of the area of the moral community has ordinarily been gained through the sacrifice of the intensity of the moral bond, or…that all men have been becoming brothers by becoming equally others.” B. Nelson, The Idea of Usury: From Tribal Brotherhood to Universal Otherhood, Chicago, 1969 [1949], p. 136. 63Behavior is used pointedly because of its conceptual relationship to outward appearance.
25
the result of this state of affairs may be the opposite: the absence of sincerity or
intelligence may be very significant. This is because training individuals to behave in
accordance with regulations runs into the problem of habitually applying seeing the
problem in terms of learned particulars. On the one hand, habituating officials to
appear ethical in their actions actually reinforces their subordination to the
organization because it is the organization that itself provides the ethics. On the other
hand, it fails to equip officials for the application of general principles to the
particular cases that cannot be comprehended in advance by kinds of general rules as
articulated in formal codes of ethics, regulations, and the like. This is the distinction
that Ricks makes between education and training, where the latter prepares
individuals only for specific problems, but the former provides the necessary mental
equipment to think about the application of abstract principles to cases as they arise.64
Under the conditions of bureaucracy, habituation is the problem; it certainly is not the
exercise of judgment.
Habituation to rules, of course, is a standard method for ensuring ethical
action in rational-legal bureaucracies. But what exactly is habituation if not a
melding of ritual and superstition? Normally, ritual and superstition have mystical
connotations, and, therefore, perhaps nothing to do with bureaucracy, particularly of
the rational-legal type described by Weber. Yet the repetitive nature of habituation
aimed at producing some good both for society at large, and particularly for the
64His book is in many ways a tale about the bureaucratization of the American military following World War II. T. Ricks, The Generals: American Military Command from World War II to Today, New York, 2012. On the training education distinction, see Ch. 23.
26
bureaucratic group itself, does suggest a kind of ritual performance.65 Every year,
thousands of officials in the US government fill out forms detailing their finances.
This is an ethical duty imposed upon them, but they do it, not in contemplation of the
ethical principles underlying this act of self-reporting, but under threat of punishment
for failure to comply. This procedure is a kind of impersonal ritual that only has the
potential to take on meaning, beyond reinforcing the official’s relationship to the
government, if and when these forms are retrieved as part of a process that may
culminate in punishment. This fear of potential punishment that lingers and pervades
is superstition, and that superstition is an important component of bureaucratic
control. Here superstition is meant in the utilitarian sense described by Polybius, who
had argued the benefits of superstition on the grounds that it helped to control Rome’s
unreasoning mob.66 For him, the ordinary masses were kept in check by this
salubrious fear. In a similar fashion, bureaucratic habituation frequently relies on
fear, a fear of the punishment that is promised to follow for the violation or disregard
of rules.67 Seen in this way, habituation becomes to thought what the cliché is to
literature, a stereotyped substitute and, consequently, the antithesis of genuine and
65Cf. M. Gluckman, Politics, Law, and Ritual in Tribal Society, New Brunswick, 2009 [1965], p. 251. Ritual is a slippery term. Gluckman distinguishes ritual and ceremonial, and he might suggest that ceremonial would be more apt here. But see R. Merton, “Bureaucratic Structure and Personality,” Social Forces 18.4 (1940), pp. 560-8, esp. p. 565, and C. Goodsell, “Administration as Ritual,” Public Administration Review, 49.2 (1989), pp. 161-6. Goodsell rightly observes that a negative aspect of ritual is its capacity to render bureaucrats “too docile to authority.” p. 165. 66Histories, 6.56.6-11 If the modern concept of sovereignty is truly a desacralized religious concept, the literal meaning of deisidaimonia becomes all the more fortuitous. S van Duffel, “Sovereignty as a Religious Concept,” Monist 90.1 (2007), pp. 126-43. 67Finer, op. cit., pp. 335b and 341b.
27
meaningful ethical practice. Instead, it is a tool of subordination, a means to
reinforce the official’s status within an organization.
While the preceding does not represent a comprehensive tally of all the
concepts that are important to the present study, they do represent a kind of explicit
statement about what is understood and meant regarding particularly fundamental
ideas. Of course, they will be further developed subsequently within the context of
the overall argument, which, while composed of many disparate parts, culminates in
the proposition that individual officials within modern bureaucracies must have space
to function as independent and thoughtful moral agents.68 At this point, some
comments regarding the methods and sources will be offered. It should be admitted
first that the orientation here is towards the ideal. Like much political theory, a
degree of generalization is employed so that the discussion largely takes place at the
level of abstractions and types even though real experiences of actual people may
differ. This approach has its problems and is not satisfying to everyone, but a
complete devotion to real, particular cases brings its own problems as well. It is
important, however, to acknowledge this state of affairs at the outset because it seems
often that those who are concerned with the real may criticize others who emphasize
the ideal under the false impression that an assessment of claims about the ideal
somehow operates under the same criteria of evaluation that would apply to claims
about the real.69 This is not true. While the real might be subject to falsification, the
68This echoes the concept of jury nullification in American law or civil disobedience in political theory. 69Cesarani’s reaction to Arendt represents a failure or a refusal to read her as an idealist: in many respects they are talking past each other. See fn. 60, supra.
28
ideal operates according to the criteria of persuasion or utility in the sense of having
explanatory power. In other words, it is assessed on its merits as satisfying narrative.
The ideal simplifies where the real finds complexity. Thus, ideal types only work to
the extent that they offer some insight or help, but they are not subject to falsification
in any meaningful sense of the term: general statements about man or society could
never survive such a standard as the particular always defeats them. Of course, even
the empirical approach engages in simplification: the alternative is to acknowledge
that nothing is truly identical with anything else, which would allow for no
generalizations at all: the real world, in fact, is excessively complex. At any rate, this
is not a science, nor does it pretend to be.70 This approach is eclectic, but primarily
grounded political theory. Among the ancients, Plato, Aristotle, and Cicero will
figure prominently. Polybius, who has not always received his due as a political
thinker in his own right, will be used for his ideas about superstition.71 Modern and
contemporary thinking about bureaucracy and officials presents an interesting
situation because, as empiricism has come into its own, addressing these issues has
undergone to some extent a division of labor. Thus, while Machiavelli, Bodin,
Montesquieu, Hobbes, Rousseau, Hegel, Constant, and Mill, for example, address in
various ways how bureaucracies should function or how officials should behave in
relation to the sovereign, the more one wishes to engage modern thinkers about
Winner’s comments on criticisms of Ellul argument about la technique echoes this point. op. cit., pp. 64-5 70 A. Gouldner, “Industrial Sociology: Status and Prospects: Discussion,” American Sociological Review, 13.4 (1948), pp. 396-400. 71 Eckstein’s work is a refreshing exposition of Polybius as an international relations theorist. A. Eckstein, Mediterranean Anarchy, Interstate War, and the Rise of Rome, Berkeley, 2009.
29
bureaucracy, the more one feels compelled to draw on a range of scholarship that
includes political theory, comparative politics, public administration, management,
sociology, law, ethics, or philosophy. A number of these disciplines have only come
into being fairly recently. This means that using modern scholarship to think about
bureaucracy invites a kind of eclecticism that would not have existed with earlier
thinkers. In the present case, then, modern scholarship that helps to advance or
illustrate the argument is used whatever its formal discipline. For example, J. Wilson
is a professor of management;72 Tilly, of comparative politics;73 MacIntyre, of
philosophy;74 Gouldner, of sociology. They all contribute to the issues raised here.
Moreover, although this is not a history of bureaucracy, history plays a subordinate
role, serving to illustrate issues in concrete terms where appropriate, particularly
when providing context for the ancient world. Thus, while the orientation is towards
political theory, the infrastructure is more diverse.
The argument itself unfolds as follows. Chapter 2 focuses on the Greek
thought about officials and their duties, particularly in light of conditions in Classical
Athens. Chapter 3 engages in he same exercise, but from the perspective of Classical
Rome. Several claims will be made. First, classical political thought does not
specifically conceive of a bureaucracy, but does address the role of magistrates, who,
in many ways, were government’s senior officials. It is taken for granted these
generally are social elites, although it must be acknowledged that this is not an
absolute rule, especially at Athens where the democracy left posts open to all
72J. Wilson, Bureaucracy: What Government Agencies Do and Why They Do It, New York, 1991. 73 C. Tilly, Coercion, Capital, and European States, New York, 1992 74 A. MacIntyre, After Virtue, Notre Dame, 2003 [1981].
30
citizens.75 These citizens are the political actors of the ancient world, and their
subordinates do not much enter into discussions about how, for example, political
policy ought to be carried out in deontological terms. These are individuals who bear
responsibility and are seen as moral actors within government. The reason for this,
and this is the second claim, is because those who were subordinate to these
magistrates were frequently conceived as either free dependents or slaves outright.
And, when the state employed staff directly, they were frequently public slaves.
History, of course, records significant exceptions to this claim. Many officials of the
Roman empire, for example, were not slaves. But, at least in theory, imperial
officials were subordinate to the sovereign or dominus as the source and arbiter of
policy, as their master. Whether or not individuals in actual practice were faithful is
immaterial just as practice in a variety of domains is not always consonant with
theory. After all, the ability of the sovereign to monitor the fidelity of distant officials
was seriously hampered by the level of technology: in practice, such officials would
have enjoyed great discretion. At any rate, the point to bear in mind is that the focus
on magistrates takes for granted servants, an assumption that has carried over into
later conceptions of bureaucracy despite the fact that in the modern period those
servants have, in fact, become full citizens themselves, each sharing in the
sovereignty once enjoyed exclusively by monarchs. Finally, the third claim is that
man’s condition as the member of a community bears directly on the ancient concept
of ethics. Ethical duty is substantiated by the social condition of reciprocity. What
75Athens and Rome are quite distinct from each other, yet there is a continuity to ancient political theory that allows one to synthesize the Greek and Roman worlds in this context.
31
one owes and what one deserves turns on one’s social standing and his horizontal and
vertical relations. In a world where an official could turn to clients, or slaves, or
friends for the execution of his duties, the relative status of the individuals involved
would have a bearing on their reliability.
Chapter 4 examines bureaucracy and officials in modern and contemporary
thought. The central theme here is the formal importance of sovereignty to
conceptions of bureaucratic subordination and the resulting attenuation of official
discretion. This is most simply expressed in Weber’s ideal formulation of the
rational-legal bureaucracy, which calls for the official to do the bidding of the
superior, but the problem of how to get magistrates to act for the community surfaces
as early as Machiavelli. It is, however, with Bodin that a full statement of
sovereignty and its implications for the administration finds expression. Sovereignty,
whether of the one, the few, or the mass, is developed as an expression of power
outside of law to which officials are subordinate. Officialdom, which is sometimes
socially, sometimes legally subordinate, becomes something other than the citizen
body. Once the people as nation supplanted the monarch, the tradition simply
supported the people’s authority: Rousseau pointed the way towards an even more
exactly control of the people’s government, but Saint-Just, who saw that there was a
contradiction between the nature of the citizen and the nature of the subordinate
official, argued that bureaucrats were apart from the polity and in need of control
through law and institutions.76 Furthermore, this is a period that witnesses a
76 Perhaps the idea of ressentiment explored by Nietzsche is at work in this movement. K. Ansell-Pearson, ed., On the Genealogy of Morality, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2004 [1994]
32
transition from the social to the legal as a means of control of the administration.
Whereas for Machiavelli officials are subordinate in social terms to the prince, who
selects them as dependents, modern thinkers sees this subordination as a consequence
of institutional arrangement and law. This represents an abstraction and reification in
legal terms of formerly social subordination. But where law and institutions only
provide part of the key to bureaucracy’s subordination, the idea that administration
itself concerns the impersonal discovery and tallying of facts suggest that the ideal
official is a kind of scientist, merely giving expression to the public will in the context
of objective reality. Discretion transforms into impartial rationality and loses its
dangerous aspect. But this very aspect, the disparity of knowledge between sovereign
and servant and the development of corporate interest (Rousseau’s volunté de corps)
potentially at odds with that of the polity remains a problem for a democratic regime.
This is all the more threatening wherever the sovereign’s capacity to exercise
oversight, that is, control over the bureaucracy, diminishes. A bureaucratic other,
separate from society and inadequately subject to the sovereign’s will, which is the
basis for the legal-rational ideal, raises serious problems for the society it ostensibly
serves. And here official discretion can help.
Chapter 5 argues for the positive role of discretion, informed by an official’s
private morality. This represents a devolution of the classical ideas about moral
agency among the elite down to the low ranking individuals who today constitute the
staffs. Political theory about the polis, res publica, or reppublica, was only
concerned with leaders, not lowly individuals tasked with carrying out their decisions.
Yet, in the modern era, all are citizens: morally and politically equal. This suggests
33
that officials, particularly in a democracy, must be seen in the same way as
magistrates. Chapter 5 also engages the traditional thinking about magisterial dissent
on the basis higher law as articulated by 16th century protestant theorists, who went as
far as to argue that magistrates by virtue of their public role were bound to act on
behalf of their communities. Moving beyond those arguments, the present study
foregrounds the role of officials as citizens, not as impersonal others within society,
by arguing that they do not cease to become citizens simply by assuming a particular
role within governmental hierarchy. The independence advocated here also serves as
a positive, internal check on the public will, which, if conceived strictly as the
sovereign, can lead to tyrannical policies, particularly in a mass society. Whereas
Rousseau saw this as a corporate activity, the argument here is that individuals
themselves are in the position to know and to act. There is room for abuse, and one
can easily object that this opens the door for rampant corruption or, as Bodin
suggested, chaos and anarchy. Possibly. But it is important to examine the slippery
nature of corruption, and the way that it draws meaning from communal values.
Corruption is what a given polity makes of it, not an objective reality. What is useful
for this analysis is the ways that corruption reflects the social connection or social
embeddedness of officials, and here an important distinction is made with
kleptocracy, which represents a crucial shift of duty away from communities and
towards the self.77 This latter phenomenon proves to be more serious in terms of
ethical conduct because it represents a denial of reciprocity that lies at the heart of
true ethics. But there is no conception of discretion that eliminates risk. Saint-Just
77 A concept borrowed from K. Polanyi, The Great Transformation: The Political and Economic Origins of Our Time, Boston, 2001.
34
saw this problem and conceived of a machinelike structure of laws to address it. Yet
there is a limit to rules, and if the official is the living law as he goes about his
business, he must have the discretion to fit generals to particulars and to decide, in the
first place, whether or not a given act is the right thing to do. This is what the citizen-
official does. In a sense, the tension between Chs. 4 and 5 represents a
reconsideration of the famous debate between C. Friedrich and H. Finer about official
responsibility.78 On the one hand, Friedrich felt that professional ethos would serve
as a check on discretion; on the other hand, Finer argued that the bureaucrat must be
answerable to an authority outside himself. An internal sense was insufficient.
Where this study differs in its consideration of this problem is in resuscitating a
tradition in political theory that has been displaced by absolutist ideas about
sovereignty. Citizen-magistrates are particularly well placed to counter negative
tendencies within bureaucracy, should they choose to. Ironically, although he was
not a theorist of democracy, Rousseau saw this as well.
78C. Friedrich, “Public Policy and the Nature of Administrative Responsibility,” Public Policy 1 (1940), pp. 3-24; H. Finer, “Administrative Responsibility in Democratic Government,” Public Administration Review 1.4 (1941), pp. 335-50
35
Chapter 2
Bureaucracy in the Polis, Real and Imagined
Traditionally, bureaucracy is not a philosophical concern. More precisely,
much Western political theory has tended to think indirectly, latently, haphazardly, or
inadvertently about how the state is organized for the implementation of policy.
Greek and Roman theorists, such as Plato, Aristotle, or Cicero, for example, although
they were interested in law and institutional arrangements, did not directly address the
way a government is staffed and made to function for the delivery of services,
however limited those services may have been in the ancient world. In short, they
did not anticipate public administration. Thus, while they do think about institutions
and magistracies, and, it could be argued, even write about office as an abstract
position independent of the office holder, they do not generally acknowledge the
existence and role of subordinate staffs, tasked with carrying out the instructions of
citizens office-holders. To some extent this is understandable: the decisions and acts
of magistrates – men of their own social milieu – mattered to them; how the
underlings, be they slaves or mere social inferiors, would have done their bidding,
was something assumed and natural. Moreover, what underlings did was act on the
decisions of superiors who wielded real power. In addition, their theories – it is a
common place to say so – recapitulated their own social outlook, which took for
granted a society animated by dependency among unequals, reciprocity among
equals. This does, however, not mean that the ancients have nothing to say about
bureaucracy. Indeed, ancient political theory has significant implications about
bureaucracy, whether that of the polis or the republic. In brief, when speaking of
36
Greek and Roman political theory, agency and duty are conceptualized at the level of
the magistrate, the political actor, who for the execution of his will could turn either
to his social network of peers or to his subordinates whose labor he owned or rented.
This is key for understanding the implications of the classical view for bureaucratic
theory because the idea of staffs as subordinates bound to serve the responsible
master persists to the modern period. It is worth acknowledging too that modern
theory has long labored under the idea of the simple polis or respublica.79 At any
rate, the point is that moral agency within a regime is traditionally seen in terms of
the citizen as magistrate or office-holder, not the staffs engaged in the drudgery of
quotidian governmental activity, not that such staffs did not exist.
Ancient states of any size often relied upon officials to carry out the
government’s administrative tasks. The Athens of Plato and Aristotle, for example,
despite being undeveloped by modern stands, nevertheless, would have provided
them with examples of state-owned slaves carrying out the state’s will; furthermore,
they would also have been aware of other, imperial states with more developed
administrations such as Egypt. Yet Greek and Roman political theory generally tends
to take little notice of these foreign administrations and what implications they might
have for theorizing about the nature of the state, even an ideal one. The traditional
79On the reception of the democracy, see A. Saxonhouse, “Athenian Democracy: Modern Mythmakers and Ancient Theorists,” Political Science and Politics 26.3 (Sep. 1993), pp. 486-90; D. Held, Models of Democracy, Stanford, 1996, pp. 33-4. On the republic, see F. Millar, The Roman Republic in Political Thought, Hanover 2002. Millar’s project is to examine the reception of the republic by political thinkers in view of the republic as it was. A. Ryan rightly observes that much of the language of modern political thinking uses ancient words for modern ideas to which they may bear little resemblance. On Politics: A History of Political Thought from Herodotus to the Present, New York, 2012, v. 1, p. xxiii.
37
focus on the conceptually small polis and res publica makes all the difference: these
are constructs envisioning office-holding, free citizens with the mechanics of how
records are to be kept, taxes collected, and streets kept clean left behind, so to speak,
a veil of ignorance. But to some extent this is the point: the writers were not
concerned with staffs who would simply do whatever magistrates or the consultative
bodies decided: their subservience was taken for granted because that is, in fact, what
they observed in their own communities.
Before turning to Athens, it should be acknowledged that there were other
traditions in the ancient world regarding the behavior of bureaucrats and holders of
high office. Both Egyptian and Mesopotamian literature offer examples that, if not
explicating systematic political theory, are clear in expressing ideas about the proper
behavior of government officials. Weber conceded that in Ancient Egypt there was
perhaps a level of systematic organization that could in his sense be called
bureaucracy. The historical record itself, even if we lack a complete understanding of
the Egyptian bureaucracy’s numerous offices, makes it clear that functionaries
abounded.80 Critically, the Egyptians were not insensitive to the fact that holding
office gave one opportunities to abuse power and build personal influence. Not only
is there a body of literature enjoining the kings to behave as benevolent and upright
rulers, but there is also the famous inscription from the tomb of the vizier, Rekhmire,
80This is a simplification: there are significant differences between, for example, the Old and New Kingdoms, not to mention other periods. For an overview of Egyptian officialdom in the Middle Kingdom, see W. Grajetzki, Court Officials of the Egyptian Middle Kingdom, London, 2009. It must be admitted there that numerous titles refer to various offices, the function of which is poorly understood, if at all. op. cit., p. 4. S. Finer, The History of Government: Ancient Monarchies and Empires, Oxford, 1997, v. 1, pp. 156-60.
38
which warns the incumbent against a variety of abuses, including making “of anyone
a client.”81 The situation in Mesopotamia is similar. For, despite the difficulties
associated with the translation and determination of specific functions, it is clear that
the states, at times, possessed extensive bureaucracies.82 And there too may be found
a tradition of the king’s right behavior towards subjects. For example, the Advice to a
Prince, admittedly a late document, admonishes the king to respect “due process” in
order to avoid popular discontent.83 These few comments serve merely to suggest
that other traditions existed within the context of ancient bureaucratic societies
regarding the proper exercise of official power. To be sure, they do not necessarily
represent part of a larger, systematic political theory, nor do they have any direct role
in the development of the political theory to be treated here, but they do serve to
81For an example of injunctions for the king’s behavior, see the Instruction of King Amenemhet I for his Son Sesostris I in M. Lichtheim, Ancient Egyptian Literature, Berkeley, 1975, v. 1, pp. 135-9; for the inscription of Rekhmire and commentary, see R. Faulkner, “The Installation of the Vizier,” Journal of Egyptian Archeology 41 (Dec., 1955), pp. 18-29, with comment at p. 23, and an excerpt of the inscription in Lichtheim, Ancient Egyptian Literature, Berkeley, 1976, v. 2, pp. 21-4. A complete translation of this and additional inscriptions of Rekhmire’s tomb is provided in J. Breasted, Ancient Records of Egypt, Urbana, 2001 [1906], v. 2, p. 266ff. The word, mrw, rendered in Lichtheim as “client,” is rendered in Breasted as “brethren.” In his grammar, A. Gardiner translates as “friends” and “partisans.” Egyptian Grammar, Oxford, 1964 [1927], p. 491 (N36). Faulker’s dictionary adds “servants, underlings” and “supporters.” A Concise Dictionary of Middle Egyptian, Oxford, 1981 [1962], p. 111. Finally, R. Hannig’s dictionary provides the more general, “die Gehörige,” with the additional explanation: “die auf Verwaltungsbefehl zu staatlichen Arbeiten eingezogen werden können.” Großes Handwörterbuch Ägyptisch-Deutsch, Mainz, 1995, p. 345b. All of this suggests that it is unclear whether or not mrw should be rendered here as “client” “Dependent” might be the more conservative alternative. 82See, for example, J. Postgate, Early Mesopotamia, London, 1994, p. 153. On the Assyrian empire, see Finer, op. cit., pp. 224-32. 83Foster suggests that the purpose of this text is uncertain, but the advice itself seems clear enough. For the text, see B. Foster, Before the Muses, Bethesda, 1996, v. 2, 745-7. One need not follow J. Keane’s enthusiasm in finding here some Mesopotamian antecedent of democratic sentiment. The Life and Death of Democracy, New York, 2009, p. 119.
39
acknowledge the existence other ancient traditions. Interestingly, they also parallel
the Greco-Roman tradition in that whatever thought they devoted to office-holders,
they did not think much about the petty underlings whose duty consisted in carrying
out the master’s instructions.
In Greece, the Classical Athenian democracy functioned through magistracies
held by citizens themselves as amateurs. Obviously, neither the democratic
institutions nor the magistrates were up to the task of running Athens by themselves.
Consequently, Athens did have, for lack of a better term, an administration that grew
in response to the civic communities needs. The government itself consisted of more
than 400 offices filled annually by citizens, and those positions not held by citizens
were sometimes staffed by state-owned slaves, or demosioi, who served as, among
other things, file clerks and sergeants-at-arms.84 The later Roman empire, by way of
contrast, possessed an extensive administration, and it was staffed by slaves,
freedmen, and men who, like John Lydus, hoped to make their way through the ranks
of government and on to a comfortable retirement.85 These cursory observations
highlight the backdrop of growth in formal and informal administration against which
political theory continued to be written as though the polis, or, later, the res publica
were a constant. Put differently, the practicalities of administration lurked in the
background, while political thought perpetuated the story of magistracies held by free
men of quality and rank. This discontinuity between theory and practice is
84D. Stockton, The Classical Athenian Democracy, Oxford, 1990, pp. 111-2; s.v., demosioi, H. Cancik and H. Schneider, edd., Brill’s New Pauly, Leiden, 2004, v. 4, p. 291a, and s.v., public administration, v. 11, pp. 478b-9a. On state-owned slaves, see O. Jacob, Les esclaves publics à Athènes, New York, 1979 [1928] 85A. Bandy, ed., Ioannes Lydus: On Powers or the Magistracies of the Roman State, Philadelphia, 1983; C. Kelly, Ruling the Later Roman Empire, Cambridge, 2004.
40
significant. For it highlights an unremarked divide between those who rule and are
ruled in turn, to paraphrase Aristotle, and those socially subordinate men, who, as
dependents and property, were expected to carry out the will of their masters. These
preliminaries in mind, it is now possible to turn to a fuller consideration of Plato,
Aristotle, and the Athens with which they were familiar.
The general features of the Athenian democracy and how it operated are
uncontroversial.86 A restricted group of males enjoyed the status of citizens, which
entitled them to full political participation, including the holding of office. Thus,
apart from participation in the assembly (ekklesia), citizens at Athens also stood a
reasonable chance of serving as juror-judges at trial (dikastes), or on the assembly’s
executive council (boule), or, in some cases, of taking part in the boule’s rotating
executive committee (prutaneia). Of the more than 400 magistracies available, the
overwhelming majority was filled through a lottery system. There were a few
exceptions, such as serving as general (strategos), but it is mostly true that the willing
citizen was in a position to serve as legislator, executive, judge, or magistrate at any
given time. This means that in most respects, and to the dismay of some, such as
Plato or the so-called Old Oligarch, the democracy was characterized by rank
amateurism.87 Holding office at Athens was generally a matter of citizenship and
luck: one had to be a citizen and the lottery bestowed office. The democracy was
characterized by the notion of isonomia, or equality of citizens before the law, and
86Stockton provides a good overview. 87Tocqueville might have seen in this a kind of habituation to public life that was something more than simple amateurism.
41
isegoria, or the equal rights of citizens to express their views on political matters.88
In short, these ideas meant that being a citizen per se was what mattered: all citizens,
being equal before the law and equally entitled to speak freely, were politically
fungible. In some domains, there was a concession to actual expertise: for office
holding, know-how sometimes mattered more than a putative concept of civic
equality. Hence, generals were subject to election and able to hold office in
consecutive years. Moreover, character mattered: would-be officials were subject to
the dokimasia, an examination of their eligibility and character, and upon leaving
office they had to account for their official conduct through a process known as the
euthuna.89 While these mechanisms might ensure to the political community’s
satisfaction an incumbent’s suitability to hold office and confirm that he had fulfilled
his term in a minimally correct fashion, it is important to note that expertise is
generally not at issue: amateurism was the rule.
It is important to admit that, although these amateurs performed functions
carried out today by bureaucrats, they did not themselves constitute a bureaucracy,
properly speaking. At any rate, the range of tasks covered by these magistrates
88On these concepts, see K. Raflaub, “Democracy, Oligarchy, and the concept of the ‘Free Citizen’ in Late Fifth-Century Athens,” Political Theory 11.4 (Nov. 1983), pp. 517-44; C. Rowe and M. Schofield, edd., The Cambridge History of Greek and Roman Political Thought, Cambridge, 2005, p. 47. S. Todd argues that isegoria is a collective concept. The Shape of Athenian Law, Oxford, 1993, p. 312; Ober suggests that it is individual, meaning that each citizen had the right to speak. It may be too much to insist one way or the other, although Ober’s view seems most natural. J. Ober, Mass and Elite in Democratic Athens, Princeton, 1989, pp. 78-9. 89Although the dokimasia was supposed to focus on strict eligibility, it often invited questions of character. See D. MacDowell, The Law in Classical Athens, Ithaca, 1978, pp. 167-9 and (euthuna) pp. 170-2. Aristotle describes the dokimasia and euthuna as he knew them in the 4th century. See S. Everson, ed., Aristotle: The Politics and The Constitution of Athens, CTHPT, Cambridge, 1996 [1984], pp. 252-3 (55), 247-8 (48), and 251-2 (54).
42
included, for example, conducting naval inventories, maintaining streets, supervising
police and prisons, and letting public contracts: all domains deemed by modern
governments to be within the purview of the professionalized bureaucracy.90 If the
ancient system at Athens leaned in any way towards a measure of professionalism in
government, it was in those positions that were filled by some 2,000 public slaves
(demosioi) because these were the individuals who, unlike magistrates, were not
subject to term limits: in other words, their assured continuity guaranteed a measure
of useful expertise.91 Slave status in itself did not preclude acquiring skills necessary
to keeping the wheels of government in motion. As Stockton points out, “[t]he boule
could also call on the services of a number of public slaves (demosioi) for various
tasks requiring some considerable degree of literacy and numeracy….”92 In addition,
their roles, while supportive of citizen office-holders, surely offered some scope for
the development of expertise and, perhaps, something approaching professionalism.
To maintain security, state slaves known as Scythians functioned for roughly
as century as a kind of police force or sergeant-at-arms.93 In Aristophanes, for
90This amateur management of the state’s business was not unique to Athens. See, for example, the law governing the duties of the gymnasiarch at Beroia, whose only qualification, judging from the law itself, seems that the incumbent be of a certain age. I. Arnaoutoglou, Ancient Greek Laws, London, 1998, pp. 117-23 (98). 91For 2,000 as the number of public slaves, see P. Ismard, “Public Slavery, Politics and Expertise in Classical Athens.” Center for Hellenic Studies, Research Bulletin 1, no. 2 (2013). Finer suggests “merely a few slaves,” but this appears to be incorrect. op. cit., p. 345. His acknowledgement of the “hyperetes, freedmen or slaves, who manned the offices as clerks, secretaries, or archivists” speaks to more than “a few.” p. 349. On the number of police alone, see Jacob, op. cit., p. 64-73. 92op. cit., p. 94. Cf. Jacob’s comments, op. cit., pp. 185-6. 93See, for example, discussion of sources in S. Olson, ed., Aristophanes: Acharnians, Oxford, 2002, p. 87. According to Andocides 3.5, they were initially purchased in the 5th century. M. Gargarin and D. MacDowell, Antiphon & Andocides, The Oratory of
43
example, they are called upon to arrest Lysistrata and her companions who had seized
the acropolis.94 In the Knights, they are drag an exasperated and sputtering Cleon
from the Assembly during debate.95 In both cases, they are state agents commanded
to lay hands upon Athenian citizens, a point to which Lysistrata objects when she
threatens, “if he so much as touches me, I’ll teach him to know his place!”96 In the
realm of city maintenance, the astunomoi, officials whose tasks included keeping the
city’s public areas clean and ensuring that buildings did not have overhangs in the
street, relied upon the assistance of publicly-owned slaves to remove the corpses of
people abandoned in the street.97 Slaves were also used for the physical toil of
repairing roads, no doubt, under the supervision of the hodopoioi.98 In the courts,
slaves played a mechanical role during the selection of judges.99 Having non-citizens
carry out the physical arrest of persons might have relieved some of the tensions that
might otherwise have arisen from citizens laying hands on each other, and using
slaves to clean up the dead helps to distance citizens from ritual contamination; in the
Classical Greece, v. 1, Austin, 1998, p. 150; Todd, op. cit., p. 79; Jacob, op. cit., ch. 2. 94Lysistrata l. 433ff. A. Sommerstein, trans., Aristophanes: Lysistrata, The Acharnians, The Clouds, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1973, p. 197. 95Knights l. 665. D. Barrett and A. Sommerstein, Aristophanes: The Knights, Peace, The Birds, The Assemblywomen, Wealth, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1978, p. 61. 96Lysistrata, ll. 435-6 (ibid.) Note the emphatic placement in Greek of the words indicating that he is a state slave (demosios on), rightly pointed out by Henderson. J. Henderson, Aristophanes: Lysistrata, Oxford, 1990 [1987], p. 124 (ad loc. 435-6) For the benefits of using slaves in this context, see Todd, op. cit., p. 192. 97Aristotle, op. cit., p. 249 (50.2) Perhaps using slaves for this function relates to the pollution that comes from contact with the dead. On the dead and pollution, see, R. Parker, Miasma, Oxford, 1996 [1983], pp. 33-42. 98Aristotle, op. cit., p. 251 (54.1). Cf. Politics, p. 46 (2.7 [1267b16-9]) 99Aristotle, op. cit., pp. 259-61 (63.5; 64.1; 65.1; 65.4). The word rendered as “servant” is huperetes.
44
courts, perhaps, it was their status as slaves that reinforced an atmosphere impartiality
in the process. Slaves also served as public heralds as, for example, in the famous
Athenian tribute assessment where they summoned members of the prutaneia before
the boule for judgment.100 Athens also used slaves to serve as coin-testers
(dokimastes) to guarantee the soundness of the Athenian silver coinage.101 Anyone
refusing the slave’s judgment as to a tested coin’s validity was subject to prosecution.
But, as mentioned earlier, the slaves were employed not only for their physical
capacities, but also for tasks that would have required greater intellectual training.
Thus, a slave was used by the boule to keep track of accounts and maintain the list of
debtors.102 At any rate, the foregoing is not a comprehensive catalogue of positions
held by state-owned slaves, but a brief overview to illustrate the range of tasks
fulfilled by slaves to keep the machinery of government in motion.103
100R. Meiggs and D. Lewis, edd., A Selection of Greek Historical Inscriptions, Oxford, 1980 [1969], p. 191 (69). Cf. A. de Sélincourt, trans., Herodotus: The Histories, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1996 [1954], p. 364 (6.121) 101R. Stroud, “An Athenian Law on Silver Coinage,” Hesperia 43 (1974), pp. 157-88. 102Aristotle, op. cit., p. 247, (47.5-48.1). Identified as “state secretary” in the translation, the word in Greek is demosios. The adjective, demosios, is ambiguous. It frequently is used to denote state-owned slaves, but it can also mean simply, “of the demos,” and it can be applied to officials who are not slaves. The standard Greek dictionary, for example, offers Demosthenes 19.129 as an example of “public notary.” H. Liddell and R. Scott, A Greek-English Lexicon, Oxford, 1983 [1843], s.v., demosios, II.a. Similarly, the word huperetes, which means an assistant, is frequently used to designate state-owned slaves, but sometimes only designates a helper. See, for example, Plato’s Statesman 289c where slaves (douloi) and assistants (huperetai) clearly represent two distinct, but similar, categories. J. Annas and R. Waterfield, edd., Plato: Statesman, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2005 [1995], p. 51 103It is possible that some of these slaves enjoyed an actual status somewhat above that of the household slave’s. The evidence, however, is ambiguous, as Todd points out, when he considers the possibility that Pitallakos might have been roughly on par with a resident alien (metic). op. cit., p. 192-4; discussed by Jacob, op. cit., 147-50. In this regard, it is worth recalling that manumitted slaves became metics. R. Sealey, The Justice of the Greeks, Ann Arbor, 1994, p. 65. On the other hand, it is also worth
45
While slaves were available to help with the execution of state functions,
citizens holding office had others to whom they could turn as they carried out their
duties. Those who might help them could be friends or dependents. In this context,
“friend” refers specifically to a horizontal relationship, i.e., someone who is more or
less a social peer. “Dependent” means not just dependency in a strict sense, but
someone who was a social inferior, obligated socially to aid his superior, that is, a
client.104 The impact of patronage at Athens during the period of the democracy is
debated. In part, this is a problem of vocabulary. Because the words themselves,
patron and client, come from the Roman context, patronus and cliens, and Rome had
a formal system of clientage, it might be objected that these words, referring to a
specific Roman institution, cannot per se be employed elsewhere.105 At Athens, the
fact that there was no word exactly corresponding to cliens or patronus can be and
has been used to argue that these relationships, in fact, did not exist.106 That Roman-
recalling the contempt to which they, or even their free children were subject, and the fact that even the coin-testers could be subject to the lash. For lingering contempt, see, for example, Lysias 30.5 (Against Nicomachus), Todd, trans., Lysias, Oratory of Classical Greece, v. 2, Austin, 2000, p. 300. 104It is important not to understand the idea of “obligation” as some kind of rigid, iron law. Whether anyone does what he is supposed to do is always a matter of his own decision, and, obviously, people do not always follow the rules. Thus a client, though a client, may still not be completely reliable. Men are not machines. 105For this reason, the words, patronus and cliens, will be used specifically in reference to the Roman institution. The modern terms, patron and client, will be used in a more general sense, to describe asymmetrical relationships characterized by exchange. 106 Plutarch, writing some five centuries after the Peloponnesian War, offers prostates, “protector,” for patronus in Marius (5), but it is not truly exact because patronus and cliens form a long established dyad in Roman culture. Prostates, in fact, does not stand in the same position within Greek culture, as patronus does in Roman, particularly during the classical period. R. Warner, Plutarch: Fall of the Roman Republic, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1983 [1958], p. 17.
46
styled patroni and clientes were not at Athens is certainly true.107 This does not
mean, however, that the asymmetrical relationships characterized by exchange and
identified by sociologists and anthropologists as patron-client relationships did not
exist. Indeed, as Finley rightly observes, “[t]o insist on restricting the terminology
(and therefore the institution) to the peculiar Roman type is…unwarranted and
stultifying....”108 Thus, patron-client relationships along the lines articulated above,
namely, as sociological categories, may be used to illuminate ancient culture: in other
words, one may reasonably focus on reciprocity “between unequals, involving not
only a subjective element, the ‘evaluation of the relationship’ by the client, but also
the objective one of a genuine exchange of goods or services.”109 This concept
echoes Blok’s definition, in which he proposes a general typology of patron-client
relationships.110 It is important to note that Blok draws attention to the impact that
107The metic is a special case because he had to have a citizen sponsor (prostates). This relationship certainly could give rise to reciprocal obligations in which the citizen was the superior. 108 M. Finley, Politics in the Ancient World, Cambridge, 2002 [1983], p. 41. Sherwin-White exhibits a kind of willful obtuseness when he complains, “…the author (sc., R. Saller) regularly applies the terminology of clients and patrons to the whole range of senatorial society, where it is technically inadmissable.” (emphasis added) This ought to lead to the question: “well, what is technical standard exactly?” If one is to use the standard of Roman law, that is one thing. But it amounts to saying that Romans were only like Romans, and that there is no basis of comparison with any other culture, which is unhelpful and uninteresting, to say the least. If, however, the objection is about the application of sociological terms to Romans, that is something quite different: in fact, Roman culture may, “technically” speaking, be subjected to sociological analysis just as much as any other culture. A. Sherwin-White, “Patronage under the Principate: Personal Patronage under the Early Empire by Robert P. Saller,” Classical Review 33.2 (1983), pp. 271-3 quotation at p. 272. Saller’s “Patronage and friendship in early Imperial Rome: drawing the distinction,” printed in A. Wallace-Hadrill, Patronage in Ancient Society, London, 1989, pp. 49-62, takes up the issue of technicalities. 109Finley, ibid. 110A. Blok, “Variations in Patronage,” Sociologische Gids 16 (1969), pp. 365-78
47
“social roles” also have on these relationships. Specifically, the social context itself,
according to him, will determine whether a person may serve as a patron in one
context, or a client in another.111 Being sensitive to this dimension helps to avoid a
counterproductive and rigid view that see patrons always as patrons, or clients only as
clients, let alone the more “stultifying” approach of believing that one must be called
a client to be a client: these are in many ways straw-man arguments. Sociologically
speaking, a patron to one person may be the client of another. In addition, it is
particularly noteworthy that Blok identifies “friendship” as one of the forms of
patronage.112 Similar to “brokerage,” which may fit well in some ancient cases
because it is marked by mediation between rural and urban communities,
“friendship,” as he describes it, represents a category where patrons are not confined
to a specific category, e.g., patroni, nor are they characterized by a stable clientele as
might be the case with “brokerage.” Being flexible, this fits nicely those ancient
cases where friends seem to be very much in the position of a client, even if they are
not explicitly categorized that way by the sources.113 The perspective adopted here,
111Blok, op. cit., p. 366 112Cf. E. Wolf’s category, “instrumental friendship,” where “…each member of the dyad acts as a potential connecting link to other persons outside the dyad. Each person is a sponsor for the other.” “Kinship, Friendship, and Patron-Client Relations in Complex Societies,” in S. Schmidt, et al., edd., Friends, Followers, and Factions: A Reader in Political Clientalism, Berkeley, 1977, pp. 167-77, quotation at p. 172b. 113 Wolf’s observation is relevant: “…what may start out as a symmetrical reciprocal relationship between equal parties may, in the course of reciprocal services, develop into a relation in which one of the parties…develops a position of strength, the other a position of weakness. The charge of affect which retains the character of balanced reciprocity between equals may be seen as a device to ensure the continuity of the relationship in the face of possible ensuing imbalance.” op. cit., p. 173a. Wolf sees patron-client relations as a point where instrumental friendships reach an extreme or maximum. op. cit., p. 174b. Gallego rightly points out that in classical Athens, referring to one’s clients as friends (philoi) would serve to avoid the situation where
48
then, is that these arrangements did exist in classical Athens. To argue otherwise,
which seems typical of some classicists, is to suggest that somehow Athens stood
uniquely apart from all other societies where such phenomena seem to be a given, or
to put it differently, a kind of sentimental special pleading.
To be sure, the existence and force of patronage systems during the Athenian
classical democracy is controversial.114 Some have argued that the pressure exerted
by democratic ideology was such that the power of the wealthy, which formerly
existed via these networks, was eclipsed and became less relevant.115 Others find
patronage in a recasting of terms that see traditional relationships reinterpreted within
the context of this “radical democracy,” the old wine of patronage in new democratic
bottles.116 The resolution of this debate ultimately turns, if one is honest, on what one
finds most plausible because the evidence neither speaks for itself nor is it
unambiguous. Those who seek to emphasize democracy’s impact on traditional
patron-client relationships, simply find more plausible the idea that democracy so
“any mention of social subordination could be an indiscrete admission of the superiority of some, and of the inferiority of others….” J. Gallego, “El Patronazgo rural en la democracía ateniense,” Studia Historica: Historia Antigua, 27 (2009), pp. 163-75, quotation at pp. 168-9. In this connection, it is worth pointing out that no matter one’s social status, every man in a shame culture wishes to save face. This aspect is so often ignored or forgotten among those who might suggest that to be a client, it should always be expressed. 114A useful survey of the arguments can be found in D. Placido and C. Fornis, “Evergetismo y relaciones clientarles en la sociedad anteniense del siglo IV a.C.,” Dialogues d’histoire ancienne (37.2) 2011, pp. 19-47 115P. Millett’s article is frequently cited in this debate. “Patronage and its avoidance in classical Athens,” in Wallace-Hadrill, op. cit., pp. 15-47 116See Gallego, op. cit.
49
transformed society that patronage lost its political significance.117 But it is hard to
picture either that democracy succeeded in completely effacing such relationships,
particularly in a pre-industrial society, or that the Athenian project was uniquely able
to render such relationships politically insignificant.118 The communists, who had far
more resources at their disposal, could only dream of so complete a transformation: in
other words, it begs credulity. Consider, for example, the story of Cimon: here is a
politician from the last third of the fifth century BC, frequently cited as an example of
a politician investing personal resources in patronage for political gain. Aristotle says:
Cimon possessed a kingly fortune, and not merely performed his public liturgies magnificently but also maintained many of the members of his deme, for any member of the deme of Laciadae who wished could come to him every day and receive adequate maintenance, and all of his estates were unfenced so that anyone who wished could help himself to the fruit.119
The implications of this story can be interpreted as mere largesse, the kind of
indiscriminate giving that yields no specific bond between any individual recipient
117Millett’s conclusion that patronage was “vestigial and peripheral” and “a minor social phenomenon, with minimal political economic implications” does not follow from the evidence he cites. op. cit., p. 36 118As Finley observes, “…the Graeco-Roman world would have been unique in history if personal patronage…were not consciously deployed in support of the power structure.” op. cit, p. 45. “Unique” indeed. 119op. cit., p. 231 (27.3). Plutarch writes, “Cimon’s generosity was on a scale that surpassed even the traditional hospitality and benevolence of the Athenians…. Cimon turned his home into a place of public resort (prutaneion koinon) for his fellow citizens, while on his country estates he allowed even foreigners to take the pick of the ripe fruit and to enjoy the best of whatever was in season.” Cimon 10.6-7, in I. Scott-Kilvert, Plutarch: The Rise and Fall of Athens, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1970 [1964], p. 152. At Pericles 9.2 Plutarch puts it this way: “[Pericles] could not compete with the wealth or the property by means of which Cimon captured the affections of the poor; for the latter supplied a free dinner every day to any Athenian who needed it, provided clothes for the old, and took down the fences on his estates so that anyone who wish could pick the fruit.” Scott-Kilvert, op. cit., p. 174. Plutarch’s sources are Aristotle himself and Theopompus.
50
and the giver, or as a case of the actual building and reinforcing of the kinds of
reciprocal bonds between patron and client whereby clients were later expected to
support their benefactor, or, perhaps, more reasonably, as something in between,
meaning a case where Cimon would know some of those to whom he had been
generous, while others he would not know. In any case, it is as hard to see Cimon’s
generosity arising solely from altruism as it is to imagine that many who took
advantage of this generosity were unaware of its source and the social debt incurred.
After all, trespassing and uninvited gathering of fruit could give rise to a lawsuit, and
likely would among the litigious Athenians: anyone would have known this much,
particularly in a social world where everyone monitored everyone else. While Cimon
might not know specifically which fellow demesmen were benefiting from his
plantations – perhaps this is merely largesse – it is hard to imagine that the face-to-
face interaction implicit in the report that his fellow demesmen came to him for
assistance would not cement in the minds of both some kind of relationship. The
person who came to Cimon personally for assistance, necessarily felt some obligation
upon acceptance.120 And Cimon surely expected as much, particularly if the aid
given, as might have been the case with the destitute, was regular. To rule out the
idea that he might expect the recipient to express his gratitude in political terms
120As Socrates argues, the failure to show gratitude would be tantamount to being unjust. Memorabilia, 2.2.1-2 = E. Marchant, trans., Xenophon: Memorabilia and Oeconomicus, v. 4, LCL 168, Cambridge, 1965 [1923], pp. 102-5 Ober concludes that the Athenian notion of kharis, or gratitude, animates patronage in Athens in a way that is similar, albeit not identical, to the Roman system. “In classical Athens, the interaction between giver and recipient never developed into a formal system of patronage on the Roman model, but the Athenian relationship based on charis was overt nonetheless.” op. cit., pp. 228-9. Well, who knows, but surely favors entailed social debts. To argue otherwise demands evidence that is not forthcoming.
51
seems a matter of special pleading and, to put it bluntly, incredible.121 Indeed,
Plutarch’s discussion of Cimon’s generosity loses its forces precisely if it is seen as
somehow non-political in nature. In other words, Cimon’s political base derived, in
part, from these acts of generosity, and Pericles, who could not match it, had to rely
upon other means, i.e., largesse with public monies.122 And this is precisely the
reason, according to Aristotle, that Pericles introduced a stipend for those serving on
the courts. In other words, Plutarch, and Aristotle, for that matter, sees this anecdote
as a case of Pericles using public funds to counter the personal influence Cimon
obtained through such acts of kindness. Moreover, if there was anything striking
about Cimon, it was the scale of practice rather than the practice itself. Xenophon,
for example, provides an even more explicit example of how these asymmetrical
exchanges operated when he describes how Arkhidemos became associated with
Krito.123
Xenophon describes how Krito was feeling besieged by sycophants, who,
stereotypically, would drag decent men into court in the hope that the latter would
pay to avoid further legal trouble. Reminding Krito that he had dogs to keep his
flocks safe from wolves, Socrates advises him to find some men who would be
willing and able to serve a similar function with respect to the sycophants. “[T]here
are,” Socrates assures him, “men of this sort here who would be very honored to
121Connor is surely right in suggesting that this generosity was converted into political support. W. Connor, The New Politicians of Fifth-Century Athens, Princeton, 1971, p. 20. 122Connor, ibid. 123Memorabilia 2.9 = Marchant, op. cit., pp. 108-9
52
profit by your friendship.”124 Accordingly, he and Krito identified the “poor”
(penetes) Arkhidemos as a suitable candidate, since he was an effective speaker,
capable at trial, and, best of all, in need.125 His poverty is explained as being due to
his unwillingness to sell his services in any odd job. So, like Cimon, Krito provided
Arkhidemos oil, wine, grain, and “…whatever other item needed for living grows in
the field. Furthermore, he invited Arkhidemos to sacrifices and saw to “all other
things of this sort.” Indeed, Arkhidemos came to view Krito’s house as a “refuge”
and, knowing what was expected in return, eagerly took up the task of defending
Krito. Xenophon observes,
And since Arkhidemos resolved this (sc., a lawsuit) and other such matters, it already came about that, just as when a herdsman has a good dog, and the other herdsmen want to locate their herds near him to benefit from the dog, so too many of Krito’s friends wanted him to provide them too with Arkhidemos as a guard.126
To hostile comments that he was merely Krito’s fawning debtor, Arkhidemos retorted
that there was nothing shameful in repaying good services in kind. Xenophon
1242.9.3 = Marchant, op. cit., pp. 160-1 In the Phaedrus, Plato makes the point that men should help those most in need: “whose gratitude will be proportionate to the severity of the hardships (kakon) from which we relieve them.” Furthermore, the needy should be invited to private banquets because they too will be most grateful. W. Hamilton, trans., Phaedrus and Letters VII and VIII, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, p. 30 (233d-e) For the dog metaphor, cf. G. Ferrari, ed., Plato: The Republic, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2004 [2000], p. 109 (416a) 125Plato notes that one should be generous, not to the excessively needy, but to those “capable of returning the favor (kharis).” ibid. Xenophon’s Socrates notes that this kind of relationship is not a form as slavery, as Eutheros, reduced to menial jobs by penury, initially believes (2.8.4), but actually beneficial. Memorabilia 2.8 = Marchant, op. cit., pp. 156-9 Cf. Dem. 57.45 = A. Murray, trans., Demosthenes: Private Orations, v. 6, LCL 351, Cambridge, 1964 [1935], pp. 264-5, where the connection between penury and becoming a slave because of the need to toil for one’s needs is expressed. The discomfort with dependency is foremost because dependency is the result. 1262.9.7 = Marchant, op. cit., pp. 160-3
53
concludes the anecdote by saying that Arkhidemos was Krito’s “friend,” held in
honor by Krito’s other friends. This story is significant for several reasons. First, it
indicates explicitly that the relationship between Krito and Arkhidemos is
asymmetrical. As if the point of the latter’s poverty were not enough, Xenophon,
first in the mouth of Socrates and then in his own voice, uses the metaphor of the dog
to make clear the relationship and the role played by Arkhidemos. Moreover,
whatever motives Krito might have in seeking out Arkhidemos, it is clear that their
friendship is instrumental in nature.127 Finally, Krito makes Arkhidemos his personal
fixer by providing him with the necessities of life and taking care of him, both men
understanding that by accepting this help Arkhidemos would be socially obliged to
show his gratitude. Xenophon himself reports that Arkhidemos, in fact, excelled
(hedeos ekharizeto).128 Interesting is the fact that his enemies saw this as a case of
clientage. Although he downplayed the political significance of clientage under the
classical democracy, Millett noted that the word with which his enemies sneeringly
reproached Arkhidemos, “fawning” (kolakeuein), is the Greek for playing the role of
client (kolax).129 To be sure, Krito himself had the tact to avoid calling the
127Cf. Aristotle’s observation on asymmetrical “friendships.” R. Crisp, ed., Aristotle: Nicomachean Ethics, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2006 [2000], p. 154 (8.8.10 [1159b]) and p. 163 (8.14.1 [1163b]). 1282.9.8 = Marchant, op. cit., pp. 162-3 129Millett on kolax, op cit., p. 33. But, cf. the juxtaposition of akolasia, usually rendered as insolence, and demokratia in the Areopageticus (20) of Isocrates. G. Nordin, trans., Isocrates, v. 2, LCL 229, Cambridge, 1962 [1929], pp. 114-7 This suggests the ideological position that democracy undermines patronage. Millett remarks on this, but does not follow through on its implication. op. cit., p. 28.
54
relationship what it was, but what is related here is the technique for securing a client
and labeling that relationship friendship (philia.)130
Elsewhere Xenophon relates another anecdote that serves to illustrate the
political nature of these relations between the wealthy and their fellow citizens. In
the Oeconomicus, he relates a discussion about the duties of the wealthy at Athens
between Socrates and Krito’s son, Kritoboulos.131 Socrates pities Kritoboulos, even
though the latter is far wealthier than the former. A puzzled Kritoboulos requires an
explanation. Socrates obliges:
First, you have to put on many, large sacrifices…. 132 Then it is appropriate for you to host many foreigners, and in grand style at that. And then you have to provide banquets for citizens and render them good services or find yourself bereft of allies. And I understand that the city obliges you to pay a lot of money for horses, choruses, gymnasiarchs, and acts of patronage (prostateiai)….133 That’s why I feel sorry for you. In my case, if I should be in need of anything, I know that, as you too know, there are those would help me…. But with your friends, though they have more than you with respect to their own lifestyle, nevertheless, look to you to make themselves your debtors. (emphasis added)
The comments of Socrates are essentially in line with what he had reportedly said to
Krito already regarding the nature of reciprocity. But what is significant now is the
130See Wolf’s comment on masking these relationships. Indeed, no one would have preferred the label kolax to philos. For, as Theophrastus says, to be a kolax is to engage in a kind of “shameful companionship that benefits the kolax.” Characteres 2.1. But an admission of being a kolax would be an admission of dependency and, perhaps, penury. Rare would be the man to declare that with pride. Indeed, Eutheros himself initially recoils at the suggestion. fn. 125, supra. 1312.4-8 = Marchant, op. cit., pp. 120-59 132Apart from their religious aspects, sacrifices were often an important source of meat for both the participants and the butchers, who would sell it in the marketplace. L. Zaidman and P. Pantel, Religion in the Ancient Greek City, Cambridge, 1997 [1992], pp. 29-30 and 33-6. 133The Loeb renders prostateiai as “presidencies,” but this translation accords with the suggestions of Millet, op. cit., p. 35, and Gallego, op. cit., p. 168.
55
explicitly political nature of the obligations on Kritobolos, as, for example, when he
is expected to provide sacrifices and help fellow citizens, and the fact that his friends
still look to him for assistance. The point, of course, is that, just as Socrates has what
he needs for his minimal needs, the friends of Kritoboulos are less wealthy than
Kritoboulos and seek assistance from him. To be sure, Kritoboulos would not be so
crass as to call these men in need his clients, but hostile individuals would likely see
it thus, just as they had seen Krito’s relationship with Arkhidemos. And these friends
who turned to Kritobolos would likely be expected to support his endeavors, just like
Arkhidemos, and just like the persons aided by Cimon a generation earlier.
The foregoing supports the notion that Athenian citizens, wealthy ones in
particular, could and would build relationships supportive of their public and private
ambitions. To argue that they might not turn to these relationships in carrying out
their tasks as magistrates would be to suggest that, while they might use these
“friendships” in most other contexts, in the performance of their official business
alone they would refrain from their use. This begs credulity as there is no evidence
that anyone viewed a magistracy as somehow uniquely off-limits for the use of social
relations that they self-consciously developed and accepted as normal. In other
words, it seems reasonable to infer – it is an inference – that citizen officials at
Athens turned to their clients if they needed assistance in carrying out their tasks.
And, as was the case with Krito, the herdsman who controlled the dog, Arkhidemos,
they would have been entitled to expect some measure of loyalty and support in the
carrying out of such tasks. Of course, if assisted by slaves, there would be relatively
56
little question of their will being executed.134 But, assisted by clients, who obviously
had more choice than slaves, they generally could expect support, just as Krito and
his friends could with Arkhidemos. Social obligations can be strong in any society,
even if they are not completely reliable.
It should be noted that horizontal relationships, meaning, friends in the sense
of reciprocal relations among relative equals, could also be used for furthering one’s
interests. Giving voice to a general Greek sentiment, Meno tells Socrates that a
man’s virtue consists in treating one’s friends well and harming one’s enemies.135 In
essence, friends help each other: that is the point, as Theognis noted when advising
Kurnos to make friends with the right kind of people.136 Nor, as Connor argues, was
this confined to private affairs. It was readily understood that friendships,
functioning in this way, played an important part in political activity at Athens.137 As
Aristotle puts it in the Rhetoric: “…we define a ‘friend’ as one who will always try,
134Of course, the idea that slaves were not particularly reliable is a comic trope. 135Meno 71e = W. Lamb, trans., Plato: Laches, Protagoras, Meno, Euthydemus, v. 2, LCL 165, Cambridge, 1977 [1924], pp. 268-9 Cf. Solon, 12.5-6 in E. Hiller, ed., Anthologia Lyrica, Leipzig, 1890, p. 37; Medea notes too that this kind of reciprocity will show that she is not a weakling. D. Slavitt and P. Bovie, edd., Euripides, Philadelphia, 1998, v. 1, p. 46 (ll. 886-90 = Medea, 807-10). 136D. Wender, trans., Hesiod and Theognis, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1984 [1973], p. 100 (l. 87ff.) 137Connor, op. cit., Ch. 2; G. Calhoun, Athenian in Politics and Litigation, Studia Historica 7, Rome, 1964 [1913]. In the famous discussion of regimes found in Herodotus, Darius identifies these close, political friendships (philiai iskhurai) as a source of mischief. Histories, p. 188 (3.82.4) This passage is interesting also for its possible anticipation of the word prostates, as Connor himself notes, although the Oxford text has the participle, prostas, not the noun, prostates, as he quotes it. Connor, op. cit., pp. 114-5. The clubs, or hetaireiai, after a period of ascendency in the 5th century BC, appear to have faded in significance during the 4th. See L. Mitchell and P. Rhodes, “Friends and Enemies in Athenian Politics,” Greece & Rome 43.1 (Apr. 1996), pp. 11-30 But the details of this historical development are not critical to the discussion as people still sought to help friends and harm enemies in the courts and in politics generally without the clubs being the only manifestation of this.
57
for your sake, to do what he takes to be good for you.”138 Indeed, the need for friends
was clear enough to Plato who, when recalling the reasons that finally convinced him
to abandon political ambition, noted the fact that he lacked “friends (philon andron)
and loyal associates (hetairon piston).”139 At any rate, friends obviously were
important socially and politically.140
The foregoing considerations suggest several things about the background
against which Plato and Aristotle wrote. To be sure, their specific circumstances are
not identical, but some general observations can be made to help in understanding the
implications about officials within the traditional theory propounded by them. The
key points are as follows. First, the Athenian polis forms the background for Plato
and Aristotle’s political theory. Their comments about institutions, therefore, were
informed by their direct knowledge about the functioning of Athenian government, a
government of amateur citizens.141 Aristotle, as is well known, made a conscious
study of various regimes, but Athens he knew from living there. Its institutions were
staffed by some 2,000 state-owned slaves and citizens occupying magistracies. Some
citizen-magistrates, as noted earlier, would have enjoyed the assistance of their own
or state-owned slaves in carrying out their functions; and, in general, they certainly
could have turned to their own resources whether it be through the exchange of favors
138I. Bywater, trans., The Rhetoric and the Poetics of Aristotle, New York, 1984 [1954], p. 41 (1361b36-7). 139Letter VII, p. 114 (325d) 140See, for example, K. Dover, Popular Greek Morality in the Time of Plato and Aristotle, Oxford, 1974, pp. 180-4. 141A. Laks, “The Laws,” in C. Rowe and M. Schofield, The Cambridge History of Greek and Roman Political Thought, Cambridge, 2005 [2000], pp. 258-92. Laks endorses this very idea at pp. 268-9; G. Klosko, The Development of Plato’s Political Theory, Oxford, 2006, p. 231ff.
58
with friends, or turning to clients as needed to assist with their tasks, or even calling
upon slaves from within their household. This situation creates an important
dichotomy between subordinate helpers, slave or free, on the one hand, and superior
office-holders, on the other. When discussing regimes, it is the latter that concern
Plato and Aristotle.142
It is unsurprising that neither Aristotle nor Plato discuss in great detail the use
of slaves, whether privately or publicly state-owned, for the execution of official
tasks, such as they would have seen first hand at Athens. They were concerned with
citizens and how they organized, or ought to organize themselves in a polis.
Tellingly, in the course of his search for the true statesmen, Plato lumped together
slaves and assistants, including experts at particular governmental tasks such as
scribes.143 The point is that, as slaves take their instructions from masters, so Plato
and Aristotle focus on those masters. For Plato and Aristotle, slaves, whether owned
by officials or the state, are politically irrelevant. They are theoretically not
independent beings operating with free will because their choices are made by those
whom they serve, necessarily citizens. While the second-best regime described in
Plato’s Laws presents a detailed exposition of an ostensibly practicable state, there is
relatively little discussion of the roles to be played by slaves to support the
magistrates in the execution of their tasks.144 Nevertheless, they are there. Their
142Aristotle’s Constitution of Athens is an important source for what is known about the public slaves, but it is self-consciously empirical, while his political theory is not. The Constitution is presented as description; the Politics prescription. 143Statesman, pp. 51-52 (289c-90b). 144T. Saunders, trans., Plato: Laws, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 2004 [1970]. W. Westermann makes the point that the general acceptance of slavery “explains why Plato in his plan of the good life as depicted in the Republic did not need to mention
59
presence is remarked in his discussion of the country-wardens (agronomoi), whom he
also calls “secret-service men” (kruptoi), and “guards-in-chief” (phrourarkhoi):145
Wardens must assemble with the five officers and resolve that, being servants (oiketai), they will not possess other servants (oiketai) and slaves (douloi) for themselves, nor employ the attendants (huperetemata) of other people (the farmers and villagers) for their own private needs, but only for public tasks (ta demosia). With that exception, they must expect to double as their own servants and fend for themselves….146 (emphasis added)
Clearly country-wardens would be permitted to use slaves in the performance of their
state functions (ta demosia).147 This, Plato notes, is an exception to the austere rules
imposed upon them to ensure that during their two years in office they would know
how to serve and take care of themselves.148 The rule articulated here emphasizes the
point that they are to use these slaves in the course of their official duties alone, and it
makes provision for them to use the slaves owned by the locals.149 No mention is
the slave class.” “Between Slavery and Freedom,” American Historical Review, 50.2 (Jan., 1945), pp. 213-27, quotation at p. 215. 145On kruptoi, whose harsh lifestyle in Sparta is described admiringly by Megillus, see 633b. Strauss implies that these men might have conducted assassinations. L. Strauss, The Argument and the Action of Plato’s Laws, Chicago, 1977, p. 89. On phrourarkhoi, see a 760b. Their various duties are described in 760a-2b, 843d, 844b-c, and 848e. 146763a 147Plato envisions the country-wardens using locally-owned slaves for corvée labor. 760e 148Plato says that their term of office is two years. But he also refers to “the third year” (760e) when the tribes choose the new country-wardens. The significance of this third year is not entirely clear. Does the term of one group expire with the election of their replacements occurring the very next day? Would these replacements immediately begin touring their districts without any experience of the task at hand? Possibly some sort of overlap is envisioned whereby the experienced might help the inexperienced. 149Of these rustic slaves, there presumably would be an abundance given Plato’s supposition that the farms would be worked by slaves. 806d-e Aristotle likewise suggests that under the best regime farming should be taken on by slaves, docile ones in particular. Politics, pp. 180-1 (1330a25ff.)
60
made regarding the option a country-warden might have to use his own slaves for
official business, but Plato obviously assumes that some country-wardens might have
them. Presumably, this would be an option. The law’s point, though, is that for
personal needs, country-wardens must help themselves during the two-year period.
Apart from the restrictions, then, Plato took it for granted that slaves would be used
by these officials to carry out their duties.150 To take another category of official, the
city-wardens presumably would not be toiling by themselves on road maintenance
and building construction.151 Like the Athenian hodopoioi, they too would probably
use slaves for the heavy-lifting.152 Similarly, the market-wardens, who maintain
order in the market where foreigners and slaves would abound, presumably would
have at their disposal to slaves to maintain security, just as officials at Athens could
turn to their Scythians to manhandle the rowdy.153 But Plato would have had no
particular need to mention the obvious and does not dwell at length on what would
have been plain to anyone reading him.154
Plato’s Kallipolis by contrast is silent on exactly on the actual process of
governance and execution of policy. No particulars comparable to what is found in
the Laws are provided. However much the guardians resemble the country-wardens,
for example, the stress is not on their specific tasks, but on the mechanisms, such as
education, absence of private property, communal parenting, that would ensure their
150 Pace Strauss, ibid. Plato stresses the idea that these officials would take care of their personal needs. This makes clear that the issue over having slaves is not one of possessing slaves altogether, but one of using them as manservants. 151763c 152See, fn. 97, supra. 153763e-4c 154Similarly, Laks attributes the cursory explanation of dokimasia in the Laws to the idea that Plato “accepts current [sc., Athenian] practice.” op. cit., p. 282
61
continuity and their continued devotion to the city. The official tasks for philosopher-
kings, made to rule despite their own, understandable inclinations to do otherwise, are
essentially left out. And those remaining citizens who make up Kallipolitan society’s
third class, are more or less left to their own devices, lacking any real political
responsibilities or official tasks, but devoted above all else to minding their own
business.155 Thus, unlike the Laws, the detail of which offers some indications of
how slaves might be used in the context of an official’s duties, the Republic sheds no
light on this. Indeed, as Schlaiffer points out, consideration of slavery is cursory in
the Republic because Plato is concerned with the free, not the enslaved, although,
unlike the Magnesians of the Laws, the third class of free citizens in Kallipolis do not
themselves have any discernible function in the state beyond staying out of trouble.156
They represent a kind of higher order rabble.
Like Plato, Aristotle assumes that some slaves will assist magistrates in the
performance of their duties. There are two main passages in the Politics where he,
who throughout reveals his extensive knowledge of various regimes, addresses
magistrates at some length.157 In making the arrangements of a state, he argues, one
155434c. Plato’s lack of concern for the third, economic class of citizens is made clear at 421a and 434a. Schlaifer remarks that Plato essentially groups them with the banausoi, or tradesmen, who were generally viewed with contempt, as Plato himself suggests (Republic, p. 310 [590c]; Laws, p. 416 [918c]). R. Schlaifer, “Greek Theories of Slavery from Homer to Aristotle,” Harvard Studies in Classical Philology 47 (1936), pp. 165-205, at p. 173. Cf. Dover, op. cit., p. 40. Tellingly, Plato’s second-best regime would forbid citizens from engaging in trades because of their corrupting potential. (pp. 250, 303-4, and 417-8 [806d; 846d-e; 918d-20c]) Similarly, Aristotle warns about the morally and physically degrading effects of working in the banausic arts, and suggests that “the best form of state will not admit them to citizenship.” Politics, p. 68 (3.5 [1278a8]) and p. 196 (8.2 [1337b10-2]) 156Schlaifer, op. cit., p. 191 157Politics, pp. 114-8 (4.15 [1299a1-1300b12) and pp. 162-6 (6.8 [1321b1-23a11])
62
must tend to the distribution of offices (arkhai), which are indispensible because “no
state can exist not having the necessary offices, and no state can be well administered
not having the offices which tend to preserve harmony and good order.”158 On that
basis, he proceeds to identify various necessary magistracies, such as those found in
Athens, summarized as follows:
Offices concerned with matters of religion, with war, with the revenue and expenditure, with the market, with the city, with the harbours, with the country; also with the courts of law, with the records of contracts, with execution of sentences, with custody of prisoners, with audits and scrutinies and accounts of magistrates; lastly, there are those which preside over the public deliberations of the state.159
While this summary seems detailed enough to suggest a range of domains to be dealt
with by citizen-officials, Aristotle, in fact, uses this list to encapsulate the thrust of his
preceding, detailed exposition of the various, specific offices that are necessary to
governing a polis. He does not specifically describe how the magistrates will go
about their tasks, but, as was suggested earlier, he need not have. That a magistrate
might use a privately or publicly owned slave could be taken for granted. Indeed, a
number of the offices specifically mentioned by him in this section echo the very
ones that are described in the Constitution of Athens as being connected with the use
of slave labor. For example, Aristotle references people who would tend to the
maintenance of roads and buildings; at Athens the hodopoioi, or officials tasked with
maintaining roads, used slaves to accomplish this task.160 Similarly, Aristotle refers
to those who would maintain the register of public debtors; such officials were
158Politics, pp. 162-3 (6.8 [1321b6-8]) 159Politics, p. 165 (6.8 [1322b29-37]) 160Politics, p. 163 (6.8 -1321b20-1]); Constitution, p. 251 (54.1).
63
augmented by slaves at Athens.161 The point, however, is that he need not have
mentioned in the Politics the idea that some of these officials relied upon slaves to
carry out their tasks. It was well known that they often did.
In point of fact, however, Aristotle does mention this specific fact in the other
passage where he describes magistracies at length. At 4.15 he takes up the question
of various details surrounding offices in general: their distribution, their manner of
selection, and the appropriate length of their terms. On the issue of what exactly is
meant by office, Aristotle, in a way that anticipates the modern split between politics
and administration, offers the following:
Some duties of superintendence again are political…. Other offices are concerned with household management, like that of corn measurers who exist in many states and are elected officers. There are also menial (huperetikai) offices which the rich have executed by slaves. Speaking generally, those are to be called offices to which the duties are assigned of deliberating about certain measures and of judging and commanding, especially the last; for to command is the especial duty of the magistrate.162 (emphasis added)
Of course, Aristotle does not say that all offices entail the use of slaves, but he does
say that the menial ones (huperetikai) tend to be.163 The implication of his point that
the rich would use slaves seems to be that at a minimum it is likely that the rich
would use their personal slaves.164 If, as at Athens, the state provides slaves
161Politics, p. 164 (6.8 [1322a9-10]); Constitution, p. 247 (48.1) 162Politics, p. 115 (4.15 1299a20-8]) 163It is worth remembering that this adjective refers to the kinds of things pertaining to the huperetes, or servant. In other words, it need not indicate solely physical tasks, but could also encompass record keeping or whatever subordinate tasks an official may wish to entrust to his slaves. Cf. Statesman, p.52 (290b) where scribes, for example, fall under this head. 164The phrase in Greek, an euporosi, means “if they have the means,” or, perhaps, “if they are able,” the “they” actually being unspecified. T. Sinclair’s translation
64
(demosioi), that simply means that even a citizen-official of lesser means could enjoy
the kind of help a slave would provide. It seems clear, then, that Aristotle understood
that slaves would play a role in government, as servants to citizen-officials. He
simply had no more reason to detail every instance in which that would be the case
than had Plato when he described his second-best regime. They both largely took this
state of affairs for granted: it was, after all, their own experience of the government at
Athens.
Slaves used in government service would, of course, be particularly suited to
carrying out the tasks laid upon them by citizen-officials. Like their Athenian
contemporaries, for both Plato and Aristotle, after all, the distinction between slave
and free was crucial for the state. Citizens had a critical, mental capacity that was
necessary to their role, a capacity that slaves lacked, by definition if not in actual fact.
Aristotle referred to this as the deliberative capacity (to bouleutikon), Plato as a
divine prudence (to theion kai phronimon).165 This is not, of course, the same thing
as saying that slaves are necessarily stupid human beings.166 But there was a
theoretical, if not ideological, distinction to be made between the free and the
enslaved in their respective capacities to reason. Among citizens, too, this capacity
for reason clearly operated along a continuum that ran from those on one end who
could master the political art and, clearly being the minority, were best endowed for
preserves this ambiguity: “when resources permit.” Aristotle: The Politics, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1980 [1962], p. 183. 165Politics, p. 29 (1.13 [1260a12]); Republic, p. 310 (590d) Cf. Plato’s suggestion in the Statesman that those who are sunk in ignorance (amathia) and baseness (tapeinotes) are worthy of slavery. p. 82 (309a) 166Aristotle allows that slaves have some capacity to reason. Politics, p. 17 (1.5 [1254b22])
65
the task and to the rest, on the other end.167 At any rate, this distinction between the
capacity of the free and slave is brought out in the Laws where Plato discusses
doctors, who themselves could be of either status. However, Plato is here asserts that
the slave has learned his skills through habituation, and, thus, does not explain to his
patients the reasons why a particular treatment may be prescribed: he lacks the
knowledge to do so. Slave doctors learn their skills “empirically, by watching and
obeying their masters. They’ve no systematic knowledge (logos) such as free doctors
have learned for themselves and pass on to their pupils.”168 Plato’s slave doctor, who
rushes from case to case, treats slaves and does not engage in explanations. Although
it might be tempting to attribute the lack of explanation to the slave’s hurried
schedule, it is clear Plato sees him as lacking the knowledge necessary to explain the
underlying factors requiring the treatment prescribed. The slave has only learned by
doing and observing. Moreover, Plato’s free doctor, who has theoretical knowledge,
engages in explanation to his free patients. In other words, he explains to someone
who has the capacity to understand. The educated educates; the habituated cannot.
167being small in number, Statesman, p. 57 (293a) and p. 63 (297b-c); this ideal person would remove the need for law because he could match desert to the particular case. pp. 58-9 (294a-b) 168Laws, pp. 135-6 (720b) Plato does allow in this passage that some doctor assistants (huperetai) may be free, but his emphasis is on the slaves (douloi). He goes on to explain that the slave doctor “simply prescribes what he thinks best in light of experience, as if he had precise knowledge….” (emphasis added) p. 136 (720c) Plato makes it clear that his focus is on the distinction between free and slave doctor when he resumes the point subsequently. “Make no mistake about what would happen, if one of those doctors (sc., slave doctors) who are innocent of theory and practice medicine by rule of thumb (ton tais empeirais aneu logou) were ever to come across a gentleman (eleutheros) doctor conversing with a gentleman (eleutheros) patient. [The latter] would be acting almost like a philosopher….” p. 319 (857c-d) The phrase aneu logou, rendered as “innocent of theory,” brings home the point about the lack of reasoning in the slave doctor’s training. Naturally, these claims reflect an elite ideology: Plato was a creature of his world.
66
As this comparison is used to introduce Plato’s idea that laws should contain
preambles offering a rationale for the laws, it is clear as well that, as far as Plato was
concerned, citizens themselves were amenable to explanation and reason in a way
that slaves are not. Citizen and free becomes almost a tautology here. Therefore, it
comes as no surprise that Magnesia’s citizens are to leave manual tasks to others,
while they devote themselves to a form of leisure aimed at physical and moral
improvement.169 Citizens were to use slaves to serve their basic needs.
For Aristotle, slaves are essentially animate tools, mere extensions of the
master’s will, utterly lacking in any deliberative faculty. As deliberation is prior to
rational choice, they never reach the question of engaging that faculty.170 Thus,
169Laws, pp. 250-2 (806d-8c) Cf. Aristotle, who likewise suggests that citizens should not have to look after their needs in well-ordered states, those tasks being left to slaves and others. Politics, pp. 49-50 (2.9 [1269a34-7]) Note that even Plato’s prescription to treat slaves well is aimed, not so much at endearing masters to them, as at imbuing masters with just practices: it is a form of civic training. pp. 213-4 (777c-8a) Plato’s recommendation that slaves be foreigners and incapable of speaking the same languages is significant in that it reinforces the notion of slaves lacking the necessary capacities to be citizens. (777d) Aristotle likewise recommends that groups of mixed foreign slaves, whether owned privately or by the state, should toil in the fields. Politics, pp. 180-1 (7.10 [1330a25-31]) Cf. Clytemnestra’s initial reaction when she believes that Cassandra cannot speak Greek. Agamemnon, ll. 1060-1 in P. Vellacott, trans., Aeschylus: The Oresteian Trilogy, Penguin Classics, Harmmondsworth, 1985 [1956], p. 79 Plato connects the performance of menial tasks with a weak capacity for reason; the interests of a person in this state are best served by his being a slave to the best man, who has the “divine prudence.” Republic, p. 310 (590c-d) 170R. Crisp, Aristotle: Nicomachean Ethics, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2006 [2000], pp. 40-4 (3.2-3 [1111b-1113a]); deliberation linked with wisdom and political skill, A. Kenny, Aristotle: The Eudemian Ethics, Oxford World’s Classics, Oxford, 2011, pp. 81-2 (5.7-8 [1141b8-12 and 1141b30-5]) The precise relationship between the Nicomachean and Eudemian Ethics is vexed and unsettled. Kenny concludes that the case for seeing the Eudemian Ethics as an “immature” work “collapses (p.xi); Crisp sees the Nicomachean Ethics as “almost certainly the product of Aristotle’s developed intellect…a revision of his earlier Eudemian Ethics.” (p. vii) This is not the place to settle a dispute of experts. Books 5-7 of the Nicomachean correspond to
67
slaves function essentially as an extension of the master: they are the body to his
mind, which does deliberate and reason.171 It is in this vein that Aristotle famously
describes them as animate tools, belonging properly to the sphere of household
management, and certainly having no proper role in the state, a sphere of life properly
made up of equals.172 Moreover, slaves lack the independence necessary to proper
citizens.173 Given this understanding, it is not surprising that a slave’s excellence
(arete) consists in being “useful for [sc., the master’s] wants of life, and therefore he
will obviously require only so much excellence as will prevent him from failing in his
function….”174 This point gains more force when Aristotle’s thought experiment is
recalled where he mentions that, if tools could function as pure automata, no one
the Eudemian’s 4-6. Cf. regarding choice, R. Waterfield, Aristotle: Physics, Oxford World’s Classics, Oxford, 1999, pp. 46-7 (2.6 [197b5-b12]) 171“And indeed the use made of slaves and tame animals is not very different; for both with their bodies minister to the needs of life.” Politics, p. 17 (1.5 [1254b25-6]); “There is a common relationship that links soul and body, craftsman and tool, and master and slave…. [T]he body is the connatural tool of the soul, a slave is, as it were, a part and detachable tool of his master, and a tool is a sort of inanimate slave.” Eudemian Ethics, p. 129 (7.9 [1241b17-24]) and p. 131 (7.10 [1242a28-31]) This is an interesting opposition that anticipates Taylor’s conception of manager and worker. F. Taylor, The Principles of Scientific Management, New York, 1967 [1911] 172animate tool (ktema ti empsukhon): Politics, p. 15 (1.4 [1253b32-3]) Aristotle inverts this claim in the Eudemian Ethics where he claims that “a tool is a sort of inanimate slave.” p. 129 (7.9 [1241b22-3]) In the Nicomachean Ethics, Aristotle concludes from this that the relationship between master and slave is like that of owner and ox because it takes no part of justice. p.158 (8.11 [1161b]) On the state as a union of equals: Politics, p. 176 (1328a35-7) 173 Politics, p. 96 (4.4 [1291a10-1]) The more one engages in pure toil, the more slavelike one becomes. Politics, p. 26 (1.11 [1258b37-8]) Lack of independence similarly made being a laborer problematic. Dover, op. cit., p. 40 Though a modern concept, Aristotle would have readily understood the implication of wage-slavery. Thus Aristotle argues, “[T]he artisan is less closely connected with him (sc., the master), and only attains excellence in proportion as he becomes a slave. The meaner sort of mechanic has a special and separate slavery….” Politics, p. 30 (1.13 [1260a41-60b1]) Cf. G. Fitzhugh, Cannibals All! or Slaves Without Masters, Cambridge, 1988 [1960]. 174Politics, pp. 29-30 (1.13 [1260a34-6])
68
would want slaves.175 Obviously, as real human beings, slaves posed a problem, not
least because they could be unruly.176 But the implication is that the more the slave
conforms to the master’s will, the more automatic he becomes, and, more
importantly, the more perfectly he functions as the master’s extension.
While Plato and Aristotle’s discussions of slavery do not overlap completely,
they do offer some coherence with regard to thinking about how the amateur-officials
of a polis would carry out their duties with the assistance of slaves. First, it is clear
that slaves were a given. And they would be used, not merely for the maintenance of
citizens in their homes, but also to help citizens holding office. Slaves might belong
to the state; they might be drawn from the magistrate’s household. Because the
office-holder was a citizen, by definition he possessed the capacity to evaluate and
decide matters under his control. Engaging in these deliberative activities was not a
task for slaves. Instead, they would provide the physical assistance necessary to the
task. Slaves, to be sure, could acquire skills: some, for example, had, if not
knowledge, at least medical skill.177 So one need not assume that slaves would
simply tasked with heaving of corpses from the side of the road or clearing of sewers.
Presumably, they might even, as at Athens, taken part in managing the registers of
debts. But critically, they were extensions of the decision-making process that
characterized the work of officials. To paraphrase Aristotle, they were to the masters,
175Politics, p. 15 (1.4 [1253b33-4a1]) 176Cf. Plato’s comments in the Republic that a master removed from society would be unable to control his slaves. Republic, p. 295 (578d) His advice in the Laws on the treatment of slaves, as mentioned earlier, was oriented not so much to avoiding household rebellions as to the moral improvement of masters. See, fn. 169, supra. 177Plato takes up the difference between knowledge (episteme) and skill or knack (tekhne) at length in the Gorgias.
69
as the body was to the mind. Thus, to the extent possible they were to serve as mere
instruments until the day when more unquestioning automata became available.
The question remains: did Plato or Aristotle take up the other dimension of
life at Athens that bore upon life there, the role of the kolax or client? In fact, Plato
was particularly interested to remove the conditions that led to the patron-client
relationship; the more pragmatic Aristotle, on the other hand, acknowledges these
unequal relations, which suggests that they were taken for granted by his theory. In
the Eudemian Ethics, for example, he takes up the issue of friendships among
unequals.178 Absent from his discussion is condemnation of the relationship; most
friendships, after all, were in his view utilitarian.179 Indeed, Aristotle highlights the
fact that the superior derives from the relationship a sense of “being superior.”
Nevertheless, Aristotle also recognizes the negative aspects of asymmetrical
friendships. They do represent, after all, a double-edged sword. Kolakes, seen as
flatterers or clients – the Greek does not distinguish – tended to gravitate around the
tyrant where they doubtless would reinforce the latter’s notions of superiority.180 But
the wealthy too could attract these kinds of men, much as Krito had drawn
Arkhidemos into his circle. Yet Aristotle, who contradicts Plato on this issue, is
willing to wave aside this problem, namely, the negative aspects of an asymmetrical
relationship because, in the final analysis, “there is the greatest pleasure in doing a
kindness or service to friends or guests or companions, which can only be rendered
178Eudemian Ethics, pp. 123-4 (7.4 [1239a1ff.]) 179Eudemian Ethics, p. 116 (7.2 [1236a33ff.]) Note that Aristotle identifies “civic friendships” as a category based on utility. p. 130 180Politics, p. 147 (1314a1-4])
70
when a man has private property.”181 Aristotle, indeed, viewed the liberal man as one
who “gives away his surplus.”182 But “gives” to whom, if not to friends, inferiors, or
the state, as Krito had done, or Kritoboulos had to do? This liberality clearly entailed
a reciprocal obligation on the part of its beneficiaries, as was understood by
Arkhidemos and Eutheros. Therefore, Aristotle took for granted the kinds of bonds
to which reciprocity among unequals would give rise. There is no reason to think that
officials, even in his ideal state, would not rely upon these relations in their
capacities.
For Plato, however, the kind of asymmetrical relationships characteristic of
patron-client relations were objectionable, and he provided the means to prevent
them.183 In particular, he so arranged the ownership of property that Magnesia would
consist of relative equals, who within certain limits would be neither wealthy nor
poor. Poverty, after all, “drives us by distress into losing all sense of shame,” a point
understood quite well by Eutheros in the Memorabilia, who characterized such
dependency as “slavery.”184 Thus, Magnesia’s citizens would possess some measure
181Politics, pp. 36-7 (2.5 [1263b5-22]). If there were any doubt about this criticism being leveled at Plato, Aristotle makes it clear when he refers to the abolishing of private property as an error of Socrates. p. 37 (2.5 [1264b30-1]) As Klosko rightly observed, Aristotle failed to understand that the Plato allowed private property to the majority, i.e., the third class of ordinary citizens. op. cit., p. 155 182Eudemian Ethics, pp. 45-6 (3.4 [1231b28ff.]) Liberality is treated in the Nicomachean Ethics, where Aristotle states, “[t]he use of wealth seems to consist in spending and giving….” pp. 60-5 (4.1 [1119b-1122a]) cf. Laws, p. 158 (737d-e) where Plato allows in theory for a positive dimension to largesse by wealthy land-owners, but views this positive aspect as unlikely in practice. 183 Plato’s comments regarding these relationships suggest, pace Millett, that their political implications were problematic. 184Laws, p. 417 (919b); on Eutheros, see fn. 125, supra.
71
of inalienable property to guarantee their status.185 According to Plato, oligarchic
regimes were characterized by some accumulating property, others selling theirs and
becoming impoverished.186 This is the kind of indigence that leads to metaphorical
slavery, meaning dependence.187 Moreover, as Plato notes, success in oligarchic
regimes requires spending money “in the cause of reputation” and forming alliances
to compete.188 In short, having too much money yields “enmity and feuds in private
and public life,” and having too little “almost invariably leads to slavery.” Plato
surely does not, of course, mean actual enslavement, but the kind of dependency that
marks the status of a man who cannot provide for his own basic needs, like
Arkhidemos.189 As he explains in his discussion of how to treat children,
A child’s fortune will be most in harmony with his circumstances, and superior to all other fortunes, if it is modest enough not to attract flatters (akolakeutos), but sufficient to supply all his needs (ton d’anagkaion me endees).190
The descent of oligarchy into democracy presents simply an extension of these
principles. For the rulers, who are presumably wealthy, not only do nothing to ensure
that heirs with property retain some substance, but they even exploit the situation by
purchasing property or lending money against it in order to “become even richer and
185Laws, pp. 164-5 (741a-e). Money too is strictly limited in order that citizens may remain “friends,” and litigiousness not take hold. p. 167 (744c-4a) Recall in this regard that the services of Arkhidemos were required precisely because of this kind of problem, and his enemies identified these services as playing the role of the kolax or client. See, fn. 130, supra. 186Republic, p. 262 (552a-b) 187Laws, p. 146 (779a) 188Republic, p. 266 (555a) 189Cf. Millet on the similarity between slavery and dependence. op. cit., p. 29 190Laws, p. 146 (729a-b)
72
more highly respected.”191 (emphasis added) But as was seen earlier, this respect
consists partly in building a retinue of friends and dependents. Plato’s hostility to
wealth, informed by the idea that it leads to impoverishment and dependence, leads
him to devise for Magnesia rules to ensure that the citizens interact as relative equals
and remain so. Neither will they engage in trades or money-making nor will they
perform service “for private individuals who are not his (sc., the citizen’s) equals in
status.”192 This leads to the kind of true friendship that is characterized by horizontal
relations of reciprocity. To be sure, Plato has other motives for his arrangements
beyond preventing the kinds of patron-client relationship that existed between Krito
and Arkhidemos. But gross inequalities also occupied his attention because it leads
to a dependency of the poor on the wealthy, and this leads to shamelessness and
strife. The poor man might do almost anything to secure the basic needs of life.
The real Athenian polis was a state characterized by citizens rotating through
magistracies as amateur-officials. It lacked a true bureaucracy in the modern sense,
but records still had to be kept, streets swept, and jails guarded. To fulfill these
many tasks, officials had at their disposal various slaves provided by the state.
Furthermore, it seems likely enough that in cases where such demosioi were not
provided, officials were quite able, as Aristotle, and to a lesser extent Plato,
suggested, to turn to their private slaves or to those bound to them because of favors
previously bestowed: friends or clients (kolakes). The advantage of slaves, of
191This kind of analysis ought to temper views that somehow the democracy eliminated patronage networks. Even if taken as the clichéd critique of the conservative elite, the fact is that money still meant something, even in a radical democracy. 192Laws, p. 418 (919d)
73
course, was that they might come closer to functioning as pure extensions of an
official’s will. The slave, after all, was generally in no position to question a master’s
commands, and, though a free dependent might be choose which requests to honor,
they were socially expected to requite through loyal service favors previously
bestowed. While Plato allowed for the service of slaves in Magnesia, he was keenly
aware of the problems that dependency and economic inequality could produce
among citizens. To forestall that situation, he provided for an arrangement that
would prevent a citizen from becoming a kolax. It is worth pointing out that, if
patronage was not a factor, why would he have bothered to devise a system aimed at
undermining it. Obviously, the Athens with which he was familiar, like many other
societies throughout history, was a place where patronage was a reality, not some
distant memory swept away by the revolutionizing spirit of radical democracy.193 For
him, slaves sufficed to help with the duties assigned them by Magnesia’s magistrates.
Aristotle, whose approach was vastly more practical in orientation, allowed for both
slaves and dependents. And he was more explicit in his understanding of the
relationship between slave and master: it was that of body and soul, the one to serve,
the other to command. Seen in this light, magistrates of the polis were masters
endowed with the power to command. Slaves who might make up part of their staffs
were there to serve. Of importance for later conceptions of bureaucracy, of course, is
the focus in ancient literature on the status of citizen as someone apart, capable of
deliberation, and the nature of magistracies as offices held by these free citizens
193Conover seems largely to accept the disappearance of patronage, yet also acknowledges that wealth and, if anything, the habits of patronage still existed, even if, as with Cleon, that patronage came at state expense. K. Conover, Bribery in Classical Athens, Princeton University, dissertation, 2010, Ch.2
74
capable of making decisions and answering for their actions, their staffs simply
adjuncts because as slaves or other social relations, they were a given, and largely did
not matter.
75
Chapter 3
Bureaucracy in the Res Publica, Real and Imagined
Magistrates of the Roman republic held office by election. They were not
professionals, but amateurs, generally of a certain class, and endowed with wealth
and the right amount of social support in the form of friends and dependents. To
carry out their functions, they had staffs of varying size, drawn from either their own
circle or the state’s pool of lesser assistants, made up of freedmen, slaves, and free
persons of various circumstance. In literary and philosophical sources, these people
barely figure, known mostly by their functions, often unnamed. Given their
important role as instruments of official will, it might be surprising that Roman ideas
about the state do not address them. In fact, it is not since, as was the case with Plato
and Aristotle, their subordinate status could be taken for granted, and the issue of free
citizens in a state largely boiled down to the proper structuring of the interests of the
right kind of people: in other words, the class of persons expected to serve as
magistrates. Moreover, these mostly anonymous figures who supported magistrates
did not occupy positions of political power, and that made all the difference. Those
positions were held by their social betters who, at least in theory, could take for
granted that their orders would be followed.
Although the idea of a Roman bureaucracy usually brings up images of an
elaborate system staffed by thousands, this picture betters suits the empire of late
antiquity, not the Republic of the second and first centuries BC.194 Nevertheless, the
194On the later empire’s bureaucracy, see, for example, A. Jones, The Later Roman Empire 284-602, Baltimore, 1986, v. 1, Ch. 16. Jones reckons the number of bureaucrats at roughly 30,000, which, being derived in part from the Notitia
76
Republican government did have staffs of officials that represent for the present
purpose a kind of bureaucratic system, however spare. Before turning to that system,
however, it will be useful to sketch of the Republican government, which lasted more
or less continuously from the fifth through the first century BC.195 To be sure, the
Republic was subject to some changes during that lengthy period, but those details
need not distract from the purpose at hand.196
The Republic was made up of the assemblies, the senate, and the magistrates.
The senate was, technically speaking, an advisory body and its acts, the
Dignitatum, would reflect the 4-5th century AD. See p. 1057 with details at fn. 44 on pp. 1411-2. Numbers for earlier periods are even more difficult to come by. Duncan-Jones suggests that paying for the bureaucracy decreased from roughly 9 to 2% of the budget between 150 and 215 AD as the military portion of the budget increased. R. Duncan-Jones, Money and Government in the Roman Empire, Cambridge, 1998, p. 45. The basis of his calculations for “civilian employees” are discussed at pp. 37-8, but upon examination appear to reveal an inconsistency. Thus in table 3.7 he estimates that the budget for civilian employees held constant at 75 million sesterces between 150 and 215. Yet part of that 75 million had to include his estimate for citizen procurators (Table 3.4, p. 37), which he suggests ranged from 15.4 to 20.3 million sesterces between 192 and 211. As that forms a part of the overall, proposed 75 million (represented in table 3.5, p. 39), it does not makes sense that the overall total held constant because, as he states, it varied by 5 million sesterces during the period 192 through 211. At any rate, his estimates are educated guesses, and he offers no proposals for the actual number of persons involved. Harl estimates that expenditures on civil administration between the reigns of Augustus and Septimius Severus might have rivaled the demands of the military, and between the reigns of Caracalla and Constantine he cites a ten-fold increase in the number of senior civil servants. K. Harl, Coinage in the Roman Economy: 300 B.C. to A.D. 700, Baltimore, 1996, pp. 227-8. Thus, he appears to estimate administrative expenditure as something like four times the estimate of Duncan-Jones. No one ventures to guess as the cost of administration during the Republic. 195The traditional date for the expulsion of the kings is 509 BC; the Republic experienced several interruptions of relatively brief length, such as during the period of the decemvirate in the mid-fifth century and the period of Sulla’s domination in the early 1st century. 196For example, changes in the numbers of magistrates, the composition of the standing courts, the gradual opening of offices to plebeians, and other such historical modifications do not really need to be addressed here. A useful overview of the Republic’s institutions can be found in Finer, Government, v. 1, Ch. 4, p. 397ff.
77
senatusconsulta, were not laws. Nonetheless, it dominated foreign affairs, although
declarations of war were traditionally matters for the popular assembly. The senators,
whose numbers varied over the years, typically were former magistrates, and they sat
for life, unless expelled.197 Socially, members of the senate were wealthy and
aristocratic. It was not a gathering of ordinary folk, nor was it a body to which any
ambitious person could reasonably aspire.198 Apart from the Senate, the Republic
also had several bodies where citizens decided various matters. These were the three
comitia where citizens met and voted by century (comitia centuriata), tribe (comitia
tributa), or parish (comitia curiata). For political purposes, the comitia centuriata
and comitia tributa were the ones that mattered. The former elected the higher
magistrates and decided on whether or not to go to war. Citizens, assembled as
centuries organized on the basis of wealth and voted in century order, wealthiest to
poorest, until a majority was reached, each century casting one collective vote
regardless of the actual number of citizens making up each unit. This effectively
pushed the balance in favor of the wealthy, who voted first, and whose centuries were
sufficiently numerous to be capable of resolving questions before the poorer centuries
197Even so-called novi homines were not ordinary bumpkins: Marius and Cicero both had important backing that enabled them to achieve the consulship. To be sure, Catiline was able to throw Cicero’s social status in his face, calling him an “inquilinus,” the equivalent, perhaps of calling someone nowadays “a mere immigrant,” but Cicero was no prole. S. Handford, Sallust: The Jugurthine War/The Conspiracy of Catiline, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1985 [1963], p. 198 (37.1); Gaeus Julius Caesar greatly expanded the senate and enrolled persons of widely varying social backgrounds, including some freedmen, Gauls, and centurions. H. Scullard, From the Gracchi to Nero, London, 1977 [1959], pp. 151-2. Caesar was apparently unbothered by criticism on this point, observing that “’If bandits and cut-throats had helped to defend my honour, I should have shown them gratitude in the same way.’” (emphasis added) R. Graves, Suetonius: The Twelve Caesars, Penguin Classics, London, 2003 [1957], p. 34 (Divus Iulius 72) 198See M. Beard and M. Crawford, Rome in the Late Republic, Ithaca, 1985, pp. 40-7
78
would be called upon. In the comitia tributa, citizens voted as tribes, with each tribe
casting a single, collective vote. Tribes were distinguished on the basis of being
either rural or urban. Because many of the urban poor were enrolled in the four urban
tribes, while wealthy landowners, who could travel to Rome or already resided there,
were in the 31 rural tribes, the weight again was in favor of the wealthy, although
voting was simultaneous, not in order as with comitia centuriata. The comitia tributa
voted on lesser magistrates and matters put before it by the convening official. There
also existed a concilium plebis, the composition of which made it very similar to that
of the comitia tributa. Its enactments, the plebiscita, had the force of law. All
assemblies were limited to voting “yes” or “no” on proposals. They were not fora for
debate or discussion, as this function was fulfilled at gatherings known as contiones.
Thus deliberation and voting occurred separately.
The third component of the Republic consisted of the magistrates, officers
elected for a year to carry out the day-to-day business of government. There exists a
fundamental distinction between magistrates invested with imperium, or the ability to
command an army, and those without it.199 The senior magistrates were the praetors
and consuls, and they were elected in the comitia centuriata; the praetors were
judicial figures, and the two consuls amounted to the heads of state. Both had the
authority to command armies. Lictors attended the consuls and praetors, bearing the
famous rods and axes, or fasces, symbolizing their imperium. The more numerous,
lesser magistrates lacked imperium, had more circumscribed areas of competence,
and served upon election by the comitia tributa. These were the quaestors, aediles,
199s.v., imperium, New Pauly, v. 6
79
and tresviri capitales. The sphere of competence for quaestors was finance, for the
aediles, markets; the tresviri were concerned with maintaining security within Rome,
although they were not policeman in any modern sense. Thus, the tresviri, despite
not having imperium, did have lictors at their disposal. All told there were perhaps
some 80 magistracies open for election every year.200 To be sure, the foregoing is a
bear sketch of the Republic’s institutions: they were more complex and they
underwent changes during the five centuries of their operation. But this is sufficient
to provide a rough outline of the Republic’s so-called “mixed constitution.”201
To perform their duties, office holders were often helped by men made
available to them from either their own or the state’s resources. These assistants,
slave and free, were known categorically as apparitores or accensi, and those directly
in the state’s service represented something of a bureaucracy, however
rudimentary.202 The term, apparitor, in fact, covers a wide range of skilled and semi-
200Finer, Government, p. 407. Other magistracies, such as the censorship, the tribunate, and the dictatorship, existed, but need not be addressed. Similarly, the religious colleges can be passed over. On religion in the late Republic, see Beard and Crawford, op. cit., ch. 3. 201In the Histories, Polybius famously described the Republic as a mixed constitution, combining as the democratic element, the assemblies, as the aristocratic, the senate, and as the monarchic, the consulate. W. Paton, trans., Polybius: The Histories, LCL 138, Cambridge, 1979 [1923], v. 3, pp. 294-7 (6.10.11-2) 202Finer acknowledges that these men existed, but asserts that the Republic had no bureaucracy. “There was no bureaucracy: it is essential to note this. Continuity – a feature of bureaucracies – was provided elsewhere, by the Senate, in practice. As for execution and implementation of the magistrates’ orders, each of them had a salaried staff of various lictors, scribes, messengers, and heralds.” (emphasis in original) p. 406; later he writes, “Under the Republic, as we have seen, the magistrate carried out his duties with the assistance of his private consilium and his freedmen and slaves.” p. 549 These two passages are contradictory, and it is clear that the permanence of the scribes (scribae), for example, did represent the supposedly lacking “continuity.” Cato Uticensis, ever fastidious, chaffed at this very thing when he sought to root out corruption in the treasury and found his wish to get rid of rotten staff thwarted.
80
skilled individuals permanently employed by the state. For example, lictors
(lictores), heralds (praecones), scribes (scribae), and messengers (viatores) are
government-paid apparitores.203 These better known staffs were organized in pools
or “corporations” known as decuriae that were ranked according to seniority and
prestige; the organization of lesser bureaucrats is obscure.204 Many of these men
were of lower social status, often being freedmen, but this was not always the case. A
few either had or had acquired wealth while in their post, and there are exceptional
instances in which the odd man actually came to hold office.205 For example, the
Plutarch, Cato Minor 16 = B. Perrin, trans., Plutarch’s Lives, v. 8, LCL 100, Cambridge, 1959 [1919], pp. 268-73 More importantly, Cicero himself explicitly points out the imbalance in expertise between magistrates and their assistants: “…most people holding office, because of their ignorance of law, are just as knowledgeable as their assistants want them to be.” J. Zetzel, Cicero: On the Commonwealth and On the Laws, CTHPT, 2008 [1999], p. 175 (Laws 3.48). This disparity of knowledge between those who decide and those who execute is a common theme among those who worry about bureaucratic power. 203T. Mommsen, “De apparitoribus magistratuum Romanorum,” Rheinisches Museum für Philologie 6 (1848), pp. 1-57; A. Jones, “The Roman civil service (clerical and sub-clerical grades),” Journal of Roman Studies 39 (1949), pp. 38-55; N. Purcell, “The apparitores: a study in social mobility,” Papers of the British School in Rome 51 (1983), pp. 125-73; E. Badian, “The scribae of the Roman Republic,” Klio 71:2 (1989), pp. 582-603; J. Stambaugh, The Ancient Roman City, Baltimore, 1988, pp. 103-4 and 114-6 The tresviri capitales relied upon public slaves to assist them in carrying out executions and maintaining some kind of public order. Stambaugh, op. cit., p. 125; S. Oakley, A Commentary on Livy: Books VI-X, Oxford, 2005, v. 3, p. 621 (ad loc., 9.46.3) 204“corporations” is from R. MacMullen, Corruption and the Decline of Rome, New Haven, 1988, p. 124. The actual mechanics of scribal assignment to individual officials is unclear; apparently, they supported both senior and junior magistrates. Badian argues that Sulla retained the decuriae already in place precisely because to do otherwise would have meant the loss of much experience, i.e., continuity, needed for the Republic’s routine administration. Badian, op. cit., p. 598 205Purcel argues that these men were “social climbers.” op. cit. As MacMullen points out, what impresses is the fact that despite their small salaries men would pay for the post and had the potential to end their careers as wealthy men. Clearly they took for granted that these posts would be a source of rents. op. cit., pp. 124-6; C. Kelly, Ruling the Later Roman Empire, Cambridge, 2006, pp. 133-6
81
scriba, Gnaeus Flavius became curule aedile in 304 BC; Marcus Claudius Glicia,
momentary dictator in 249; Gaeus Cicereius, praetor in 173.206 These cases were
rare, nor do they represent the many nameless figures found in literature,
anonymously and automatically carrying out the commands of magistrates. Indeed,
this anonymity is significant: it emphasizes that these men served, or were expected
to serve, as mere appendages to whatever officials they served. Their function masks
their person, reinforcing an ideology juxtaposing named officials whose will and
agency instantiate the Republic against their nameless helpers. When they are named,
the naming serves a purpose: perhaps to mark them as unusually successful or
worthy, perhaps to mark them as particularly reprehensible or vile.
Cicero in his prosecution against Verres, Sicily’s corrupt governor whose case
was so hopeless that he left Rome rather than await the final verdict, preserves the
names of several officials. But their names survive because the acts in which they
engaged on behalf of the governor were so utterly reprehensible. There is Sextius, the
lictor, for example, who unhesitatingly beat Gaeus Servilius to death at Lilybaeum
because he had insulted the boss.207 Servilius had spoken disparagingly of Verres,
who, upon learning this, promptly had him brought to court. When he refused to pay
206Badian provides a prosopography of Republican scribae. op. cit. On Gnaeus Flavius, see Oakley, Livy, v. 3, ad loc. 9.46.1-15, pp. 600-15. That some scribae came to hold office does not say much about their social status. Cf. the case preserved in the Digest (1.14.3) of Barbarius or Barbatius Philippus, a runaway slave who held the praetorship in the parlous 40s BC. A. Watson, ed., The Digest of Justinian, Philadelphia, 1998, v. 1; R. Syme, “Who was Vedius Polio?,” Journal of Roman Studies, 51.1 (1961), pp. 23-30, Barbatius at pp. 24-5. The scribae are the best understood of the staffs. See also, C. Damon, “Sex. Cloelius, Scriba,” Harvard Studies in Classical Philology 94 (1992), pp. 227-50 207In Verrem 5.54.140-2 = L. Greenwood, trans., Cicero: The Verrine Orations, v. 2, LCL 293, Cambridge, 1960 [1935], pp. 620-3
82
bond, Verres set his lictors, experts at the rod, on Servilius; as the task reached a
crescendo, Sextius joined in, until Servilius, covered in blood and lying on the
ground, had a change of heart and agreed to pay bond.208 He later died of his wounds.
Killing was allegedly a regular part of his duties, although, when matters were less
impromptu, Sextius could modulate the coup de grâce, depending on what the victim,
or the victim’s family, might pay.209 Clearly, the rods and axes borne by the lictors
were not mere props: they were literally tools of the trade, but lictoring was not
simply a matter of earning a living by the sweat of one’s brow.210 Lictors had other,
less physically demanding tasks, such as running errands, clearing the way as the
magistrate passed through a crowd, knocking on doors before a magistrate’s entry. In
208Lictors normally kept order in court. Cf. Cicero’s comment about the lictor of G. Octavius. D. Shackleton-Bailey, Cicero’s Letters to his Friends, Atlanta, 1988, p. 654 (1.1.7.21) 209In Verrem 5.45.118 Of course, inflicting punishment was a lictor’s duty; Cicero’s point is the abuse of Verres. Cf. Pro G. Rabirio 4.13 = H. Hodge, trans., Cicero: The Speeches, LCL 252, Cambridge, 1966 [1927], pp. 462-5; Gellius, Noctes Atticae, 2.3.1 = J. Rolfe, trans., The Attic Nights of Aulus Gellius, v. 1, LCL 195, Cambridge, 1961 [1927], pp. 128-9 Cicero connects bribery and the use of lictors in his speech against Piso, although it is Piso who gets the money, leaving the dirty work to the lictors, presumably. In Pisonem 83-4 with comments ad loc., R. Nisbet, ed., Cicero: In L. Calpurnium Pisonem Oratio, Oxford, 1975 [1961], pp. 152-3 210Consider, for example, the senatusconsultum de aquaeductibus of 11 BC, printed in V. Ehrenberg and A. Jones, Documents Illustrating the Reigns of Augustus and Tiberius, Oxford, 1949, p. 113-5 (278). Technically speaking this is post-Republican, but interesting in particular for stating, “…since they [sc., the officials in charge of public waterworks] are outside the city for this business, this body has decided that they shall have two lictors….” Presumably these lictors would symbolize their authority and, perhaps, keep locals from interfering with their tasks. Cf. W. Nippel, “Policing Rome,” Journal of Roman Studies 74 (1984), pp. 20-9: although lictores were not bodyguards, they would enforce compliance. pp. 22-3
83
all this, of course, their role was to execute their master’s will without hesitation, and,
as Cicero advised his brother, even to serve as aids to an official’s mildness.211
Scribes too, as mentioned earlier, generally remained unnamed figures, unless
their identification served a purpose. Cicero mentions the two who served him when
he was quaestor, Lucius Mamilus and Lucius Sergius, precisely because they were
frugal and honorable, unlike the staff working for Verres.212 At any rate, the men
who kept the state books and oversaw the public records were supposed to be
honorable.213 Indeed, they probably had to swear an oath upon assuming their official
211Shackleton-Bailey, Cicero’s Letters, p. 651 (1.1.4.13) Plutarch reports that, when summoned, Fabius Maximus happily submitted to his son’s lictor, the lictor, of course, being merely an agent of the consul’s authority. I. Scott-Kilvert, trans., Plutarch: Makers of Rome, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1981 [1965], p. 79, (Fabius Maximus 24); Gellius, Noctes Atticae, 2.2.13 = Rolfe, op. cit., pp. 126-7 212In Verrem, = Greenwood, op. cit., pp. 222-5 Perhaps it is something of a trope to claim that one’s own apparitores are frugal and honorable. To admit the opposite would surely represent a failure on the part the man they supposedly served. Cf. Cato’s claim that he “never gave wine money to his apparitores and friends, nor did [he] make them wealthy to the detriment of the state.” How unlike the staff of Verres! Cato 173 (De Sumptu Suo) = Fronto 1.2 = C. Haines, trans., The Correspondence of Marcus Cornelius Fronto, v. 2, LCL 113, Cambridge, 1957 [1920], pp. 44-7 213De Domo Sua 74 = N. Watts, trans., Cicero: The Speeches, v. 11, LCL 158, Cambridge, 1965 [1923], pp. 220-3; cf. In Verrem, 3.79.183 = Greenwood, op. cit., pp. 224-7; Oakley, op. cit, ad loc. 9.46.1-2, pp. 615-6 On archives, see P. Culham, “Archives and Alternatives in Republican Rome,” Classical Philology 82.2 (Apr. 1989), pp. 100-15 Cf. Pro Archia 8 = Watts, op. cit., pp. 14-5 State archives were staffed albeit imperfectly. Cicero complains, “…the laws are what our clerks (apparitores) want them to be: we get them from scribes, and we have no authenticated public record in the public archives.” Laws, p. 174 (3.46). Fraenkel’s practical comment says it all: “If an interested party wanted to have access to certain official documents, the scribae had to produce the volume in question and see to it that authentic copies were made.” This perhaps idealizes the situation, but rings true. E. Fraenkel, Horace, Oxford, 1980 [1957], p. 14. On the other hand, sometimes it was hardly worth the effort to bother with the “official” archives, and aristocrats often relied on their own memories. Cf. Polybius, Histories, 3.26 (Paton, op. cit., v. 2, pp. 60-3) and 22.9 (Paton, op. cit., v. 5, pp. 360-5), where, in the former case, ranking Romans often relied on memory regarding the content of treaties, while in the latter, it was ranking Acheans. The preservation of the acta senatus, or minutes of the senate,
84
duties.214 Cicero stresses the point that they had to be honorable precisely because of
their responsibilities.215 But these are the higher ranked apparitores. The lower-
ranking, perhaps unsurprisingly, remain nameless. For example, messengers
(viatores), who could compel individuals to appear directly before a magistrate, are
known only by their jobs. Thus, as tribune of the people, Vatinius dispatched his
viator to the home of Marcus Bibulus, the consul, to drag him by force (vi) thence.216
Cicero says this was a completely illegal, not to mention immoral, act, yet there is no
hint that the messenger hesitated: rather, he carried out the tribune’s instructions, as
men of his profession were expected to do. Of course, those were violent times:
was apparently haphazard during the Republic. See R. Talbert, The Senate of Imperial Rome, Princeton, 1984, pp. 308-23 The speech of Cato Uticensis during the Catilinarian conspiracy was, according to Plutarch, only preserved because Cicero brought dictation specialists to the senate to record the proceedings. Cato Minor 23.3 = Perrin, op. cit., pp. 288-91 Unfortunately, the study by Metz of stenography sheds no light on those who took down senatorial minutes. A. Metz, “Die Entstehungsgeschichte der römischen Stenographie,” Hermes 66.1 (Jan. 1931), pp. 369-86 214Oakley, Livy, v. 3, pp. 618-9 (ad loc. 9.46.2); according to Oakley, the oath taken by scribae at Urso is thought to be similar or identical to the oath taken by Rome’s scribae. For the oath, see N. Lewis and M. Reinhold, Roman Civilization, Sourcebook I: The Republic, New York, 1966 [1951], p. 424 (Sect. 81) 215See Damon’s comments regarding Cicero’s reasons to speak thus. 216In Vatinium 22 = R. Gardner, trans., Cicero: The Speeches, v. 12, LCL 309, Cambridge, 1966 [1958], pp. 266-9 Bibulus, who was Caesar’s colleague, had tried to block Caesar’s legislation. His fasces were smashed in the ensuing riot, and he ran home to save his skin. D. Shackleton-Bailey, Cicero, London, 1971, p. 50; D. Stockton, Cicero: A Political Biography, Oxford, 1988 [1971], p. 169; M. Gelzer, Caesar: Politician and Statesman, Cambridge, 1968, p. 79 See also Varro’s comments regarding the distinction between magistrates with imperium, who have lictors and the right of vocatio, and those who have the right of prensio through their viatores. Most interesting is his observation that many tribunes because of their inexperience (imperiti) wrongly believed that they too had the right of vocatio. The hazards of amateur magistrates! Gellius, Noctes Atticae, 13.12.6 = J. Rolfe, The Attic Nights of Aulus Gellius, v. 2, LCL 200, Cambridge, 1960 [1927], pp. 442-5 It probably overstates the case to call lictores and viatores “minor police authorities.” E. Echols, “The Roman City Police: Origin and Development,” Classical Journal 53.8 (May 1958), pp. 377-85
85
perhaps the unnamed viator was only too happy to support Vatinius, regardless of his
job. Although he did not, Cicero might have named him as a scoundrel worthy of his
master as he had with the staff of Verres. Alternatively, any hesitation on the part of
the viator would have only been too welcome, as Cicero could have used it to bolster
his condemnation of the former tribune. But that is not the case either. The point to
note here is that this messenger is nothing more than an instrument of Vatinius.
Cicero never questions that.
Magistrates also relied on dependents, drawn from the familiae of associates
or their own: these were the accensi.217 In other words, although the state provided
apparitores, magistrates might augment these with their own men, known as accensi.
These accensi were generally freedmen (liberti), that is, socially indebted former
slaves. Not that social debts had the force of iron, but they certainly could persuade,
and the legal obligations of freedmen could sometimes be brought to bear on the
recalcitrant. In the military, although information about the role of accensi is scarce,
generals did rely on a range of persons, from inferior soldiers to “clients, whom he
wished to reward, or men recommended to him by friends.”218 Perhaps some accensi
were freeborn; such are not attested, but evidence on accensi is relatively sparse,
217 P. Fracaro, “Accensi,” Athenaeum 5 (1927), pp. 133-46; I. di Stefano Manzella, “Accensi velati consulibus apparentes ad sacra: proposta per la soluzione di un problema dibattuto,” Zeitschrift für Papyrologie und Epigraphik 101 (1994), pp. 261-79 and “Accensi: profilo di una ricerca in corso (a proposito dei <<poteri collaterali>> nella società romana),” Cahiers du Centre Gustave-Glotz 11 (2000), pp. 223-57 218A. Goldsworthy, The Roman Army at War: 100BC – AD 200, Oxford, 1996, pp. 124-5 Slaves and freedmen assisted with military finance in the imperial period, but there is no reason to see this as an innovation. Y. Le Bohec, The Imperial Roman Army, New York, 1989, p. 55 Interpreters too may fall into this category. D. Peretz, “The Roman Interpreter and his Diplomatic and Military Roles,” Zeitschrift für alte Geschichte 55.4 (2006), pp. 451-70.
86
especially for the Republican period. Cicero advised his brother to employ freedmen
(liberti) and maintain a firm grip on them as he would his slaves.219 He could speak
from experience since Publius Cornelius Lentulus Spinther’s freedman, Pausanias,
had served as Cicero’s accensus during the proconsulship in Cilicia.220 At any rate,
the accensi were men brought on board to execute without question the commands of
their bosses.221 That is how it was with perhaps the most notorious of the accensi to
be memorialized outside epigraphic sources: Timarchides.222 In him Verres found a
real partner. Cicero’s rhetoric is doubtless designed to paint for his audience a
suitably lurid picture, but one point is rings true, and that is his unfailing execution of
tasks assigned by the boss, Verres. His job included knowing all that needed to be
known about the circumstances of men in the province who attracted the governor’s
rapacity. This amounted to the application of threats or inducements as needed.
Furthermore, Timarchides peddled the governor’s services: obviously he was, as he
had to be for the operation to succeed, a man to be trusted, even if he was at liberty to
enrich himself along the way. If the ideology of the faithful accensus did not apply,
Cicero’s argument would have failed. Yet his audience knew well enough that
accensi were agents of their master’s will; Timarchides would not have retained his
219Shackleton-Bailey, Cicero’s Letters, p. 651 (1.1.4.13). Freedmen were obliged by law to render service as needed to former masters. J. Crook, Law and Life of Rome, Ithaca, 1978 [1967], pp., 51-5; R. Knapp, Invisible Romans, London, 2011, Ch. 5, esp. pp. 173-82 220Ad fam. 3.7.4-5 = W. Williams, trans., Cicero: The Letters to his Friends, v. 1, LCL 216, Cambridge 1965 [1927], pp. 192-5 221“La raccomandazione di Cicerone al fratello di scegliere l’accenso fra i propri liberti aveva un reale fondamento nel bisogno di obbedienza assoluta, di sicurezza e riservatezza.” (emphasis added) di Stefano Manzella, op. cit., p. 244 222 Di Stefano Manzella notes five accensi attested outside the epigraphic sources (C1-5); the inscriptions are mostly imperial. op. cit., pp. 227 and 234-5.
87
employment without the sufficiently faithful execution of his master’s will. That
much was assumed. But accensi were not always louts. They could be cultured men,
like Gabinius Antiochus, the freedman and accensus of A. Gabinius, who
accompanied his former master during the governorship in Syria, and the epigraphic
evidence shows that an accensus could take pride in his status and go on to have a
respectable career in his own right: Marcus Caelius Phileros, for example, who had
served in Africa as a general’s accensus, went on to hold office at Carthage.223 It
might be objected that these men do not represent a bureaucratic element in the
Republic system because, unlike apparitores, who developed experience because of a
continuity of service that transcended the temporary periods of office enjoyed by the
magistrates, the accensi were essentially used on an ad hoc basis. That misses the
point. The issue is that magistrates and other officials of the Republic relied as a
matter of practice on both categories of assistants. The magistrate used accensi and
apparitores, both of whom were expected to serve their superiors faithfully. This
does not mean, of course, that all apparitores and all accensi were faithful servants.
After all, Cato’s thwarted efforts to clean up the treasury by getting rid of
unsatisfactory staff shows that expectation and experience did not always match. It
does mean, however, that they were employed precisely because they were supposed
to act faithfully, not independently of the commands laid upon them.224
223 di Stefano Manzella, op. cit., p. 235 (C6) 224Though of a much later date, it is interesting that Severus, probably Severus Alexander, saw Rome’s subjection to the city prefect’s jurisdiction as a kind of fideicommissum. Digest 1.12.1.4 A fideicommissum was a formally trust by which the deceased could conditionally bequeath his estate to persons who could not formally be heirs. Thus, for example, he could leave his house to his son with the further stipulation that the house be passed to his eldest grandson upon the death of
88
Literary sources similarly preserve this image of staffs doing what they are
told. Livy is particularly important here because of the influence his history had,
courtesy of Machiavelli’s discourses, on subsequent thinking about the Republic.225
In Livy, the many lictors, scribes, heralds, and messengers exist mostly as nameless
figures, carrying out the orders of their magistrates. They are, unsurprisingly, only
known by their function, which serves to create a cumulative emphasis on these
nameless figures as mere instruments of authority. A few examples will serve to
illustrate this. The case of Publius Horatius sets the tone; the story took place, of
course, the regal period, but is cast in terms familiar to Livy’s readers. The Albans
and the Romans are on the verge of war. Rather than have their armies fight, they
agree to let the war be resolved by personal combat. As it turns out, the Albans have
a set of triplets, the Curiati, and the Romans have their triplets, the Horatii. Thus, this
combat will be conducted by them. The Romans win, Publius Horatius being the sole
survivor. The triumphant Horatius returns home bearing the spoils of his victory. It
just so happens that Horatia, his sister, had been betrothed to one of the Curiatii, and
she is upset to recognize among the victor’s spoils a cloak that she had made for her
his son. See, for example, B. Nichols, An Introduction to Roman Law, Oxford, 1992 [1962], pp. 267-9; A. Borkowski, Textbook on Roman Law2, Oxford, 2002 [1997], pp. 250-4. The implication of the quotation from Severus, then, is that the urban prefect metaphorically held Rome in trust, with the stipulations emanating from the emperor himself. Thus, the prefect, on this reading, is a fiduciary acting in good faith for the emperor. Perhaps this is merely the legalistic expression of the emperor’s attitude towards his ministers; while not so articulated, it is interesting to consider how this echoes in formal terms the expected relation of staffs to their magistrates. 225The fact that Livy did not have to explain much of the Republic’s apparatus to an, audience assumed already to know it, has led to uncertainty about features that interest later historians. See C. Rowe and M. Schofield, The Cambridge History of Greek and Roman Political Thought, Cambridge, 2005, p. 523 In this vein, it appears that Livy only once refers to accensi. 38.55.4-7
89
intended. Horatius promptly kills her as a traitor, and the king has Horatius tried for
the act. In accordance with the law, the sentence of death is pronounced, and the
lictor is ordered to carry it out. Despite the obvious unpopularity of the sentence, the
judge issues the command, saying: “Publius Horatius, I find you guilty of treason.
Lictor, bind his arms.” The people’s sentiments notwithstanding, the lictor
unhesitatingly comes forward to execute the command. Ultimately, the father
intervenes, and Horatius is not executed, but the point here is that, while a citizen
might appeal to prevent the execution of the sentence, the lictors never did anything
but act exactly as directed.226 And, it is worth noting, they were not slaves; they were
plebeians. Livy relates, for example, that, when Publilius Volero refused the draft,
the consuls sent the nameless lictors to seize him – “All of plebeian birth!” – a point,
Livy suggests, not wasted on the angry, common people. Although the mob
manhandled the lictors and drove them from the forum, the lictors themselves never
hesitated in their effort to carry out the consular command to arrest and scourge
Volero.227 In a similar vein, Titus Manlius executed his son in the mid-fourth century
BC, despite his military success, because he had carried out an attack without proper
authority. The young man had accepted the challenge of the enemy cavalryman,
Geminus Maevius, and won the duel. He returned filled with pride and displayed the
spoils to his father, who promptly ordered his execution for failing to follow his
orders, both as consul and as father (neque imperium consulare neque maiestatem
226R. Ogilvie, trans., Livy: The Early History of Rome, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1987 [1960], pp. 58-63(1.25-6), quotation from p. 62 (1.26.7) 227Ogilvie, Livy, pp. 169-70 (2.55). Lictors were not slaves, but citizens. R. Ogilvie, A Commentary on Livy: Books 1-5, Oxford, 1984 [1965], p. 374, ad loc. 2.55.3.
90
patriam).228 To the horror of the soldiers witnessing this, Titus Manlius utters the
dreaded command: “Go, lictor, bind him to the stake.” The anonymous lictor carries
out the order without hesitation, the beheaded corpse serving as a grim and shocking
reminder to all the other soldiers.229 Examples of lictors dutifully carrying out the
orders of magistrates could be multiplied, but they would only serve to reinforce the
point: they are invariably assumed to do the bidding of officials without question.230
Messengers (viatores) and heralds (praecones) similarly serve as nameless
functionaries in Livy. As with the lictors, a few examples will suffice. While the
herald might be used to quiet a crowd so that an official might speak or make an
announcement, the messenger’s tasks could be more physical.231 In the case of
Volero, mentioned earlier, he eventually was made tribune and, together with his
228B. Radice, trans., Livy: Rome and Italy, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1982, pp. 165-7 (8.7), quotation at p. 166 (8.7.15) 229p. 166 (8.17.19) Other Livian examples of this expression are compiled in S. Oakley, A Commentary on Livy: Books VI-X, Oxford, 1998, v. 2, p. 450, ad loc. Cf. Gellius, Noctes Atticae, 12.3.1-2 (Rolfe, op. cit., v. 2, pp. 366-9), which suggests an etymological relationship between binding and the word, lictor. Cicero in his speech on behalf G. Rabirius claimed that these commands, “Go, lictor, bind the hands,” and “cover the head and him to a tree,” were no longer lawful because citizens could not be summarily executed. Yet the interesting implication of this claim is that, in fact, lictors called upon to carry out these tasks would do so without pondering the legality of the matter. Such was the tradition, that lictors did the bidding of their masters, no matter how horrible the command might appear to people. Pro Rabirio 11-3 = Hodge, op. cit., pp. 462-5 Legal restrictions on the peremptory flogging of citizens (lex Porcia) are beside the point because magistrates were always capable of violating the law, as Verres had done, and, more importantly, the issue in question is the degree to which a magistrate could rely upon his lictor to carry out his orders. Livy who is self-consciously writing a normative history, portrays lictors as reliable; Cicero does as well although in the texts cited, he is not writing history. 230Cf. Oakley, Livy, v. 2, p. 724, ad loc. 8.32.10 According to Livy, the decemvirs sat as judges by rotation. The sitting judge would be accompanied by his twelve lictors, the nine colleagues, who were not sitting in judgment, would be attended by individual accensi. Ogilvie, Livy, p. 220 (3.33.8) 231On heralds, Ogilvy, Livy, p. 304 (4.32.1); Radice, op. cit., pp. 201-2 (8.32.2) On praecones, see Oakley, Livy, v. 1, p. 419, ad loc. 6.3.8
91
colleague, Laetorius, attempted to pass legislation favorable to the plebs. At the vote,
the dispute devolved into a physical confrontation with Laetorius ordering his viator
to arrest the consul, the consul ordering his lictor to arrest Laetorius.232 The
confrontation was resolved by a quick-thinking consul. Another case of the viator
being used to carry out an arrest arose during the confrontation between the dictator,
Aulus Cornelius Cossus, and Marcus Manlius Capitolinus. The dictator interrupted
Manlius as he was giving a speech to explain his actions, demanded that he
summarize and apologize to the Senate, and, those demands being refused, ordered
the viator to arrest him.233 The viator’s role in this episode is treated so perfunctorily
(arreptus a viatore) that it serves as nothing more than a fusion of function and
person.234 That is, the person who was the viator in this narrative only exists in his
role, a role which is presented as executed with complete automaticity. The participle
itself, arreptus, is striking for its physicality, not to say violence. In the well-known
case of Rome’s first poisoning trial, dated to the latter third of the fourth century BC,
a viator was dispatched to make the accused, a group of respectable women
(matronae), appear (matronis…per viatorem accitis); he simply carried out his
instructions of the consuls.235 But a viator was not confined to delivering summons
to appear or silencing the verbose; he might also deliver a magistrate’s messages. For
232 Ogilvie, Livy, p. 172 (2.56.10-3) Although in this tale, the consul has a lictor and the tribune a viator, it is clear that viatores were also available to other magistrates, such as the dictator. 233Radice, op. cit., p. 57 (6.16.1-2) 234The identical phrase is used when Appius Claudius is arrested. Ogilvie, Livy, p. 245 (3.56.6) 235Radice, op. cit., p. 183 (8.18.8); Manlius had been summoned to appear and give an accounting of himself by means of a viator. p. 55 (6.15.1) For viator as senatorial messenger, see, Cicero, De Senectute 56 = W. Falconer, trans., Cicero: De Senectute, De Amicitia, De Divinatione, v. 20, LCL 154, Cambridge, 1964 [1923], pp. 66-9
92
example, during the Second Punic War, the dictator, Fabius, sent a messenger to tell
the consul to appear before him without lictors in deference to his rank as dictator.236
Obviously and unsurprisingly, magistrates decide, staffs execute.
Still, these underlings were human beings, and there were, naturally, moments
when standards and expectations of subordinate obedience might be violated. One
story stands out, for example, because it shows that under extraordinary
circumstances, staffs might behave like citizens and follow dictates of conscience. In
187 B.C. Publius Scipio Africanus, accused by political enemies of peculation among
other things, responded in a few words then promptly departed for the Capitol. The
mass of citizens (universa contio) in attendance followed him, and “the clerks
(scribae) and messengers (viatores) abandoned the tribunes” so that no one remained
“except their retinue of slaves and the herald who…summoned the defendant.”237
The point of this unusual story is to emphasize the force of Scipio’s disturbing
influence, an influence so powerful that it transcended the obligations of subordinate
officials. It is striking because unusual, nor does it undermine Livy’s general
depiction of staffs serving as functionaries, obedient to their masters. Indeed, if not
for the consistent image of obedience, the departure of the clerks and messengers
would be undramatic, but their decision to abandon their posts emphasizes Scipio’s
power. It is an exception that gains in all the more in force, the truer the actual rule.
236A. de Sélincourt, Livy: The War with Hannibal, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1985 [1965], p. 106 (22.11.5) 237H. Bettenson, Livy: Rome and the Mediterranean, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1983 [1976], pp. 386-7, quotation from p. 387 (38.51.12) Cf. Gellius, Noctes Atticae, 4.18.3-6 = Rolfe, op. cit., v. 1, pp. 368-71; W. Paton, trans., Polybius: Histories, LCL 160, Cambridge, 1978 [1926], v. 5, pp. 424-5 (23.14.1-4) On this episode and surrounding events, see, H. Scullard, Scipio Africanus: Soldier and Politician, Ithaca, 1970, pp. 216-20.
93
Scribes also appear in Livy, although not with great frequency. The case of
Gaeus Flavius, the scribe who publicized the legal formulae (legis actiones) and
calendrical arcana previously held in secret by the pontifical college, and then went
on to hold office in the late-fourth century BC, was mentioned earlier. He is
important to Livy not as a scribe, although that status had provided Flavius with
access to secret information. Instead, he is significant because he was a historical
anomaly. Indeed, he was dogged by his status, be it as former scribe, as freedman’s
son, or both. On the one hand, he had to resign his post in order to take up the
aedileship. On the other, the nobles resented being compelled to show him the
respect befitting his office.238 Rare indeed was the scribe who broke faith;
remarkable, the scribe who held office.239 It is, after all, striking that the literary
corpus preserves the names of 22 scribae, five of whom are mentioned by Livy.240
Marcus Claudius Glicia held the dictatorship for but an instant; Lucius Cantilius, a
pontifical scribe, was clubbed to death in the assembly by his boss, the pontifex
maximus for the sacrilege of debauching a vestal; dangerous religious books,
purportedly Numa’s, were discovered on the property of Lucius Petilius; Gaeus
Cicereius, Scipio’s scribe, became praetor.241 Scribae were generally men of the
238Gellius, Noctes Atticae, 7.9.1-6 = Rolfe, op. cit., v. 2, pp. 116-9 See also Oakley’s comments on the attitude reflected in the passage in Gellius, p. 606. 239Badian, op. cit. 240Badian, op. cit., pp. 583-5 241Badian provides the sources, p. 583-4 (2-5). Claudius, Per. 19 = B. Foster, trans., Livy: History of Rome, v. 4, LCL 191, Cambridge, 1963 [1926], pp. 557-9 ; Cantilius, de Sélincourt, op. cit., p. 157 (22.57.2-3); Petillius, Bettenson, op. cit., pp. 464-5 (40.29.3-14) The episode involving Cantilius resulted in the execution of one vestal by live burial; the other suicided. The case of Petillius is interesting because the praetor, Quintus Petillius, who insisted on having Numa’s books destroyed, had made him scribe. Perhaps there is a connection between the name and the job. Presumably,
94
shadows, magistrates, men of the political stage. The creation of the office of censor
occasioned the decision to provide secretarial staffs to assist him.242 If scribes
violated their duties, presumably their oaths as well, they were prosecuted. Thus,
Livy relates that Lucius Licinius Lucullus, along with several of his assistants
(scribae viatoresque), suffered in 201 BC for embezzling from the public treasury.243
Staff faced conviction, Licinius disgrace, naturally.244 More to be expected were the
Badian does not include Marcus Anicius because, although originally a scribe, he was a municipal rather than a Roman praetor. De Sélincourt, op. cit., p. 192 (23.19.17) 242Ogilvie, Livy, p. 279 (4.8.4) 243de Sélincourt, op. cit, p. 668 (30.39.7) Of course, given the relative lack of precision involved with accounts at the aerarium, allowance must always be made for politics lurking behind this case. Cf. Cicero Pro Murena 42 = L. Lord, trans., Cicero: The Speeches, v. 10, LCL 324, Cambridge, 1964 [1937], pp. 198-201, where charges of peculation similarly resulted in the conviction of a scribe. Regarding the imprecision of accounts see, Cicero, In Pisonem 61 with comments ad loc., Nisbet, op. cit., p. 124: “great detail was not expected,” nor was it given in the case of Scipio related above (fn. 237, supra) 244True equality before the courts always made aristocrats fret over the fate of their liberty. Cicero asserted, for example, that true equality between inferiors and their betters was most “unfair.” Republic, p. 23 (1.53) Cf. M. Grant, trans., Tacitus: The Annals of Imperial Rome, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1985 [1956], p. 75: “His [sc., Tiberius] presence successfully induced many verdicts disregarding influential pressure and intrigue. Nevertheless, it also infringed on the independence of judges.” The Latin is more forceful: set dum veritati consulitur, libertas corrumpebatur (“but while fairness was considered, freedom began to be ruined.”) Furneaux and Koestermann believe that libertas here means “independence of the judges,” the idea being that the emperor’s presence influenced their decisions. H. Furneaux, ed., The Annals of Tacitus, Oxford, 1968 [1883], p. 278 (ad loc. 1.75.2); E. Koestermann, Cornelius Tacitus: Annalen, Heidelberg, 1963, v. 1, p. 245 It is also likely that Tacitus has an ironic sense here as well, namely the idea that previously aristocrats saw the effective use of influence among the judges as an expression of their liberty. Thus, Macmullen, op. cit., p. 133 Livy offers some support. While Scipio felt that he had no duty to answer the charges of Petillius, some, in fact, argued that “nothing was so essential to the equalization of liberty (aequandae libertatis) as the possibility that even the most powerful men should be put on trial.” Bettenson, op. cit., p. 385 (38.50.8) “Equality is impossible without impersonality,” observe D. North et al. Violence and Social Orders, Cambridge, 2009, p. 23
95
clerks who dutifully recorded the contributions of gold, silver, and bronze to the state
treasury to pay for fleets during the 2nd Punic War.245
If staffs appear here and there in Livy’s history, Cicero’s Commonwealth and
Laws contain one reference, albeit it an important one. For in that passage, he
highlights the problem of disparity in knowledge between magistrates and their
staffs.246 After all, because of the continuous nature of their position, scribes were
well placed to accumulate specialized experience and knowledge. Moreover, as they
tended public records, they were responsible for providing officials with fair copies of
documents, a point which Cicero similarly took as vulnerability for magistrates when
he declared, “…the laws are what our clerks want them to be: we get them from
scribes, and we have no authenticated public record in the public archives.”247 The
anxiety appearing here reflects a recognition that, despite the theoretical status of the
roles, the magistrate being the one to command, the scribe, the one to obey, in
practice, magistrates might actually find themselves at the mercy of their staffs.248
And there was little question that Cicero considered these men social inferiors, a view
his readers were expected to share. Thus, his mention in On Duties of Sulla’s scribe,
Cornelius, becoming a quaestor, an implicit jibe at the policies of Caesar, is cited to
bolster his argument that lust for money gives rise to civil discord.249 In other words,
245de Sélincourt, op. cit, p. 402 (26.36.11) 246Laws, p. 175 (3.48) Cf. the comments of Polybius to the effect that leading men in Rome had little concrete knowledge (agnooun) regarding the treaties between Rome and Carthage. Paton, op. cit., v. 2, pp. 62-3 (3.26.2) 247Laws, p. 174 (3.46) 248This parallels comedy, which regularly shows slaves getting the better of their masters. 249M. Griffin and E. Atkins, edd., Cicero: On Duties, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2008 [1991], p. 73 (2.29); A. Dyck, A Commentary on Cicero, De Officiis, Ann Arbor,
96
it is during turbulent times that people like Cornelius can rise to positions of
authority. Normally, they should not and would not. They were, after all, men who
sold their services, thereby subjecting themselves to another’s will and losing their
liberty.250
Cicero, no doubt like many of Rome’s social elite, distinguishes between
those who acquire their wealth and position through honorable pursuits, such as
agriculture, advocacy, and doing politics, and those who sell their efforts, physical or
mental, to another for cash.251 In On Duties, for example, he ranks among the lowest
1996, pp. 406-7 As a scribe, Cornelius had assisted Sulla during the proscriptions, perhaps by keeping accounts of confiscated property. Sallust, Historiae, 1.55.17 in L. Reynolds, ed., C. Sallusti Crispi Catilina, Iugurtha, Historiarum Fragmenta Selecta, Appendix Sallustiana, OCT, Oxford, 1991 Cf. the story of Ventidius Bassus, who despite humble origins and having started out as a muleteer, met with Caesar’s favor and eventually held high office, which offended decent people. Gellius, Noctes Atticae, 15.4 = Rolfe, op. cit., v. 3, LCL 212, pp. 68-73 250Cf. the stoic idea that the philosopher is truly free because freedom consists in independent action (autopragia), while lesser folk are slavish because slavery consists of the absence of independent action. A. Long and D. Sedley, edd., The Hellenistic Philosophers, Cambridge, 1992 [1989], v. 2, pp. 426-7 (67M) Pettit is right to see freedom from subjection to the will of another as key to understanding the classical Roman idea of libertas, although it is not true, as he claims, that civitas and libertas were effectively synonymous. P. Pettit, Republicanism: A Theory of Freedom and Government, Oxford, 1999, 27-35. In fact, as the jurists put it, one’s status consisted of libertas, civitas, and familia. Maxima est capitis deminutio, cum aliquis simul et civitatem et libertatem amittit…. Minor sive media est capitis deminutio, cum civitas quidem amittitur, libertas vero retinetur…. Minima est capitis deminutio, cum et civitas et libertas retinetur, sed status hominis commutatur. J. Moyle, Imperatoris Iustiniani Institutionum Libri Quattuor, Oxford, 1903, pp. 156-7 (1.16) At any rate, if libertas and civitas were synonymous, one could not lose one without the other. The jurists clearly make a distinction. 251The traditional Roman view saw honor in farming. In De Senectute 55 (Falconer, op. cit., pp. 66-7), Cicero’s Cato explains the rejection of Samnite gold by Curius thus: “he said that it seemed outstanding to him, not to have gold, but to command those who do.” While acknowledging that trade could be useful, if not too risky, Cato reminded his son that when people spoke of a good man, they praised him as “a good farmer and good pioneer (colonus).” Moreover, farmers made “the bravest men
97
and most unworthy of free men “workers who are paid for their labour and not for
their skill” with the added comment that all craftsmen are “engaged in a demeaning
trade; for there can be nothing well bred about the workshop.”252 However much
honor might accrue to those engaged in more mentally engaging trades such as
medicine, architecture, or teaching, or, one might add, the apparitorial arts, Cicero is
clear that such professions are appropriate “to the class that they befit.”253 There is
always a degree of surrender or enslavement associated with the sale of one’s
capacities. When he speaks of laborers as those who engage themselves in a kind of
slavery for the sake of money – they are mercennarii – one must wonder, despite his
qualification (mercennariorum omnium quorum operae, non quorum artes emuntur),
over the extent to which such reasoning did not apply to the doctors, architects, and
other such professions. It is perhaps a matter of degree, the crucial issue being the
sale of services. This gradation between slavery and true freedom seems palpable
when he approves the idea that extravagant expenditure delights women, children,
slaves, and “those free men that are most likes slaves.”254 While those slave-like
freemen may be slave-like in their mentality, those who hire out their services, also
are slave-like. The free too can surrender their volition to others at a price, as
and strongest soldiers.” Cato, De Agricultura 2 and 4 in W. Harper, trans., Marcus Porcius Cato on Agriculture, LCL 283, Cambridge, 1960 [1934], pp. 6-7 and 8-9 252Duties, p. 58 (1.150) Cicero explains that payment is a “contract for servitude” (auctoramentum servitutis). Crook says that the auctoramentum was the “oath of free men hiring themselves as gladiators.” op. cit., p. 61 Even if the connotation was not always of gladiators, the word related to transactions of the demimonde or, to borrow a phrase from Cicero, “the dregs of Romulus.” 253Duties, ibid. (1.151) “[S]uch professions would not, of course, come into question for a senator’s son [viz., Cicero’s, the addressee of On Duties]. Hence, there is no question of our text recommending that noble Romans become physicians, architects, or teachers….” Dyck, op. cit., p. 336 (ad loc. 1.151) 254Duties, p. 85 (2.57)
98
doubtless did many ordinary cives Romani, but Cicero’s Republican leaders were not
of this sort. They would be men with the independence of will necessary to carry out
their duties as magistrates and as guardians of the civic community.255
It is significant that Cicero likens government to guardianship (ut tutela, sic
procuratio republicae).256 Tutela in Roman law was an arrangement designed to
ensure that a guardian or tutor would manage the property of an underage child or a
woman, who were legally incapable of administering it themselves.257 Historically,
tutela derived from patria potestas, or a father’s authority within his familia.
Naturally, a familia included women, children, and slaves, individuals who could not
stand at law on their own. The paterfamilias as head of the familia would do this.
Once these relationships are understood, Cicero’s statement that government was a
metaphorical tutela becomes clearer: magistrates were competent to act on behalf of
ordinary cives.258 To magistrates rightly fell the responsibility for deciding the
direction of the political community, the civitas Romana. The picture that emerges,
then, is one of the few, the right sort, holding magistracies, and the rest.259 And in
terms of magistrates with their staffs, the former would make the decisions, the latter,
execute them.
255Cf. D. Potter, “Holding Court in Republican Rome,” American Journal of Philology 132.1 (Spring 2011), pp. 59-80. Potter observes that “political life was staggeringly expensive.” p. 64 This obviously ensured that the ordinary citizen had little opportunity to hold office, and that even the elite often ran up huge debts in money and favors to serve their immediate political aims. 256Duties, p. 33 (1.85) 257Nichols, op. cit., pp. 90-6; Crook, op. cit., pp. 113-6. 258Cicero, in the voice of Scipio, describes the opposite of the tyrant as kind of “tutor and manager of the commonwealth” (quasi tutor et procurator rei publicae). Commonwealth, p. 49 (2.51) 259The image evokes the third class of ordinary folks who are to go about their business quietly in Plato’s Republic. See, Ch. 2., p. 61, supra.
99
The lack of attention paid staffs in Cicero’s political theory need not surprise.
His concern was primarily with the men who were fitted to lead the Republic, not
those who would silently help them do it.260 Cicero praised the Republican
constitution because it assigned something (aliquid) to the “authority of the
aristocrats (principum)” and certain matters (quasdam res) to “the judgment and
wishes of the people.”261 The people, who could only approve or reject proposals
presented to them, did not assemble to deliberate.262 Indeed, when assembled in
centuries, most did not even vote. At any rate, Cicero’s point that the people were
concerned with certain matters (quasdam res) – a phrase that loses force if explained
away as mere rhetorical variatio – actually makes this point because those certain
matters were ones brought to them by magistrates, who were to the state, as the head
was to the body.263 For Cicero, ideal Republican leaders would be wise men
(prudentes), guiding the community the way that a manager (vilicus) would run an
estate, knowing the principles necessary to his station, but subordinating theoretical to
260Note that his comments on scribes come when he is explaining a proposed law on censors that itself makes no mention of them, which confirms the idea that these staffs were assumed and generally required no explicit mention in works of this sort. Laws, p. 174 (3.46) The proposed law (p. 161 [3.11]) is interesting because his solution to the problem of scribes controlling the laws is to identify as custodians of the law the censors, whom he likens to Greek nomophulakes. 261Commonwealth, p. 31 (1.69) 262Recall, though, that citizens did in actual fact argue and listen to the speechifying of magistrates at gatherings called contiones. 263“The rule of kings and generals and magistrates and fathers (patrum) and nations directs their citizens and allies in the same way that the mind rules bodies, while masters subdue their slaves in the same way that the best part of the mind, wisdom, subdues the flawed and weak parts of that same mind, such as desires, anger, and other disturbances.” Commonwealth, p. 73 (3.37a) The use of patres surely means senators. Cf. Commonwealth, p. 28 (1.64) and p. 37 (2.14); Laws, p. 172 (3.40)
100
practical concerns.264 Moreover, they use the state’s institutions and their own ability
to educate in order to rein in the impulsive mob as much with shame (verecundia) as
with fear.265 The leader is a “man of foresight” (prudens) who, to use Cicero’s
metaphor, guides the elephant, “a huge and destructive creature,” with “gentle
instruction or touch.”266 Cicero does not indicate – the Commonwealth is
fragmentary – how this particular man is to be found. His comment, however, that
attaining this level is a combination of will (voluntas) and ability (potestas) is
significant: the required study was not simply a matter of intellectual ability, but also
a matter of the leisure necessary for such pursuits.267 Ordinary citizens would rarely
264pp. 88-9 (5.5). Cf. earlier comments on the combination of practical and theoretical knowledge with the important caveat that philosophical study is for those with the capacity. p. 61 (3.6a) In On Duties, he connects prudentia (“good sense”) and consilium (“good counsel”) with the ability to anticipate events and resist impetuous reaction to turbulent events. p. 32 (1.81) 265p. 89 (5.6=3.3 in J. Powell, M. Tulli Ciceronis de Re Publica, OCT, Oxford, 2006, p. 92) Cf. Polybius, whose influence on Cicero’s Commonwealth is explicitly acknowledged (p. 41 [2.26]), on the beneficial force of superstition (deisidaimonia). Histories, 6.56.6-11. 266p. 55 (2.67); p. 92 (6.1b) In Duties, Cicero opposes prudentia, which comes with maturity, to the rash behavior of youth. For this reason, the young should respect their elders. p. 48 (1.122) Despite Cicero’s claim to a practical orientation, the implementation of his principles seems difficult. Laelius might observe that “[t]here is a fine supply of them among those present (sc., at the conversation),” but the dialogue is itself a nostalgic fantasy. More importantly, in Laws, Cicero concedes that his prescriptions are not for men of his day: “What I say does not refer to this senate or to men of the present (qui nunc sunt), but to those of the future (futuris) who may wish to obey these laws. Since the law orders them to lack all faults (omni vitio), no one with faults will even enter the order (sc., senate). That is hard to accomplish without the proper education and training….” p. 168 (3.29), cf. Commonwealth, pp. 87-8 (5.2a) 267Commonwealth, p. 61 (3.6a): qui utrumque (sc., rerum magnarum tractatio atque usus cum illarum artium studiis et cognitione) voluit et potuit. Given that all men share in the ability to reason, one might suspect that other factors, such as the leisure, would implicitly be decisive in separating the ordinary from the worthy. All men, Cicero noted, had “the capacity to learn (discendi facultas),” nor was there anyone who could not “reach virtue with the aid of a guide (dux).” Laws, p. 116 (1.30) For
101
enjoy the requisite leisure; indeed, ordinary men hold incorrect ideas.268 Thus,
although he does not refer explicitly to an Aristotelean deliberative capacity, Cicero
does make clear the distinction between rulers and ruled, the former using a practical
wisdom, the latter, like children, women, slaves, and men, who are free in name, but
lack full libertas, being unruly and dangerous as an elephant.269
It was by holding magistracies that men would regulate the mob.
Distinguishing between office-holders and ordinary citizen, Cicero wrote,
…the particular function (munus) of a magistrate is to realize that he assumes the role (personam) of the city and ought to sustain its standing and its seemliness, to preserve the laws, to administer justice (iura discribere), and to be mindful of the things that have been entrusted to his good faith (fidei). A private person, on the other hand, ought first to live on fair and equal terms with the other citizens, neither behaving submissively and abjectly nor giving himself airs….270
Magistrates, as fiduciaries by virtue of their office, bear responsibility for Rome’s
reputation and represent law to the people, whose primary duty consists in keeping
quiet.271 To be sure, they are not submissive, as a slave would be: citizens are not
those who had natural ability, however, there was an obligation to hold public office. Duties, p. 29 (1.72) 268Cf. Duties, p. 132 (3.80): “In the opinion of the ordinary man, I can think of nothing that could be a greater benefit than to be king. Conversely, when I begin to bring my reasoning back to the truth, I find nothing less beneficial for a man who has achieved it unjustly.” (emphasis added) In explaining a provision in his religious law that the ignorant should learn from official priests, he asserts that this is integral to maintaining the state, adding that ordinary people (populum) need “the judgment and authority of the nobility (consilio et auctoritate optimatium).” Laws, p. 141 (2.30) 269The violence of the people, after all, would be “much more savage and uncontrolled” if there were no tribunes to reign them in. Laws, p. 166 (3.23) 270Duties, p. 48 (1.124) Regarding the phrase, describere/discribere iura, see Dyck, op. cit., p. 298, ad loc. On the role of faith (fides), note the ideas, previously mentioned, of tutela and fideicommissum, fn. 224 and p. 98, supra. 271Echoing Aristotle, Cicero speaks of magistrates commanding and being prepared to obey as there is a rotation between office-holding and being a private citizen. Yet for
102
slaves. But they know their place all the same, and avoid being a source of
quarrels.272 In the Laws, Cicero expanded on the idea that magistrates administered
law by characterizing them as “law that speaks (lex loquens),” and law itself as “a
silent magistrate (mutus magistratus).”273 In other words, law has no effectual
existence without the magistrate, whose duty consists in determining its application.
Thus, laws rule magistrates, and magistrates “are in charge of the people.”274
Moreover, these magistrates should be the “respectable citizens (boni),” whose
political position would be assured by the elimination of secret balloting.275 Cicero
explains: “…surely you see that…the real issue in voting is what the most respectable
citizens (optimi viri) think? Therefore my law gives the appearance of liberty while
keeping the authority of the respectable (boni)…”276 (emphasis added) This is a
world of desert according to one’s station; Cicero’s vision would institutionalize that.
And these leading men, like vilici or estate managers, would offer the guidance and
reasons already mentioned, this should not be understood to imply that Cicero was advocating that any citizen could hold office. Laws, p. 158 (3.5); R. Sharples, “Cicero’s Republic and Greek Political Theory,” Polis 5 (1986), pp. 30-50, esp. pp. 38-42. Cicero’s voting scheme was meant to resolve, in the words of Nicolet, “le conflit entre la libertas et l’auctoritas.” If ordinary citizens could enjoy libertas, auctoritas belonged to their betters. C. Nicolet, “Cicéron, Platon et le vote secret,” Historia: Zeitschrift für Alte Geschichte 19.1 (Jan. 1970), pp. 39-66, quotation at p. 43. 272Many were poor, and helping decent, but poor men could pay dividends to a man of position. Duties, p. 91 (2.70) 273Laws, p. 157 (3.2) Cicero goes on to state that “law is the power to command.” p.158 (3.3) 274ibid. 275Laws, p. 171 (3.38) The specific law stated, “Let the creation of magistrates, the judicial decision of the people, and their orders and prohibitions be ascertained by ballot known to the best citizens (optimates) but free to the plebs.” p. 160 (3.10) See Nicolet, op. cit.: “Le peuple ne doit en somme avoir d’autre liberté que celle de reconnaître des boni, ceux qui sont des gens des honneurs.” p. 63. 276Laws, p. 171 (3.39)
103
education needed to keep the peace within the political community. These men are
Rome’s analogue to the Platonic guardians without the myths and breeding. If they
ever were to come into existence, they would have the requisite combination of will
and ability to justify to everyone else’s satisfaction their status. Perhaps Cicero saw
their existence as a real possibility once the turbulent period of the late Republic was
transcended: his naïve optimism in this regard was no worse than that of Caesar’s
killers, who themselves seemed to think that the true Republic would emerge
spontaneously from their high-minded act.277 At any rate, his view regarding who
should hold office is clear enough. These would be the right kind of men whose
claim to such honors was assured in part by their status, a point only reinforced by
their combination of practical experience and theoretical learning.
Magistrates, naturally, would not hold office or conduct official business
solely through accensi or apparitores. They would also turn to their circle of friends
and dependents to get things done. The impact of clients in the political sphere has
been the subject of much debate, which is something of a surprise since the Romans
recognized the institution specifically. Of course, it is worth repeating a point
previously made, namely, that a distinction must be made between the Roman
categories (patrocinium/clientela) and modern, sociological ones
(patronage/clientage). The former institution is narrower and more specific, while the
277Rawson’s assessment is worthwile. op. cit., Ch. 9 Both the Laws and the Commonwealth were composed in the last half of the decade before Caesar came to power. On the assassins as having only half completed the task, see, for example, Cicerco’s letter to Cassius. Shackleton-Bailey, Letters, pp. 493-4 (12.1) For comments on the circumstances, see Stockton, op. cit., pp. 280-85. Shackleton-Bailey concludes that the plotters had given the aftermath of the murder little thought. Cicero, p. 229.
104
latter is broader, functional, and transcends indigenous labels. In other words, a
modern category helps to look past a word like “friend” (amicus) to identify a
relationship considered by sociological criteria a client. Not that this method enjoys
favor in every quarter. Sherwin-White and Miller, for example, seem utterly repelled
by the idea that sociological categories might be applied to Romans. Others, like
Finley and Saller, find practicality in its application.278 No one, of course, denies
that social ties were important to Roman society, and even Millar, who describes his
as an “extreme” position, concedes that these ties, even ones of clientage, had some
political relevance.279 The debate is really one of degree. In other words, how
decisive were these ties for elections and politicking? Morstein-Marx, while not
going so far as Millar, has suggested in his study of the Commentariolum Petitionis
that the issue was not so much the absence of clientage in elections, but rather that the
nobiles do not appear to have relied upon it particularly: clientage appears to have
operated among those of middle or lower rank.280 At any rate, whether one enjoyed
networks of clients directly and at a high level, or indirectly and through lower-
278Sherwin-White, op. cit., Ch. 2, fn. 108, supra; F. Millar, “Political Character of the Classical Roman Republic 200-151 BC,” Journal of Roman Studies 74 (1989), pp. 1-19, esp. 9-17; Finley, op. cit., Ch. 2, fn. 108, supra; Saller, Personal Patronage under the Early Empire, Cambridge, 2002 and op. cit., Ch. 2, fn. 108, supra; Wallace-Hadrill, “Patronage in Roman Society,” in Wallace-Hadrill, op. cit., pp. 63-87; R. Morstein-Marx, “Publicity, Popularity and Patronage in the ‘Commentariolum Petitionis’,” Classical Antiquity 17.2 (Oct. 1998), pp. 259-88; J. Tanner, “Portraits, Power, and Patronage in the Late Roman Republic,” Journal of Roman Studies 90 (2000), pp. 18-50, esp. 30-6. 279Millar’s overarching purpose is to show that the Republic was genuinely democratic. Roman Republic, pp. 5-6. 280For example, the advice at Commentariolum 30 to court the leaders of the collegia, local districts, and neighborhoods suggests that these were run by local bosses, similar to what is described by R. Joseph. Democracy and Prebendal Politics in Nigeria, Cambridge, 1987, pp. 57-63. Tilly’s comments on social networks and trust are of interest as well. C. Tilly, Democracy, Cambridge, 2007, Ch. 4
105
ranked intermediaries is hard to judge, and does not actually seem to be a very
important distinction. What is important is the use of these vertical and horizontal
networks to further one’s political interests. It is hard to imagine a politics in which
that one would not offer help to whoever could offer support. Sometimes this might
have been a one-off exchange of services; sometimes something more lasting.281 And
taking care of one’s own was a duty of office.
Plutarch gave the aspiring office-holder this advice: “There are also in public
life ways which are not dishonourable of helping friends who need money to acquire
it…. For the administration of affairs frequently gives man in public life this sort of
chance to help friends.” What kind of help? “Hand over to one friend a case at law
which will bring in a good fee…to another introduce a rich man who needs legal
oversight and protection, and help another to get some profitable contract or lease.”282
The quotation is late, but not out of place since it succinctly captures that
unembarrassed expectation of what one should do once elected. Cicero’s
contemporaries would have understood, and even the comparatively fastidious Cicero
never scrupled over helping friends when he could. Not that such willingness was
without limit. His dialogue On Friendship is careful to note that one should not place
friendship – one could assume a fortiori lesser dependents as well – above duty to
country.283 That was always paramount. But he understood well enough that
rendering service entitled one to service as well. In On Duties he writes, “[i]f men are
281Commentariolum 22 in L. Purser, ed., M. Tulli Ciceronis Epistulae, v. 3, OCT, Oxford, 1902 282Precepts of Statecraft 808F-9A in H. Fowler, trans. Plutarch’s Moralia, LCL 321, Cambridge, 1950 [1936], v. 10, pp. 158-299, quotations at pp. 211-2. 283De Amicitia 36-9, 42 = Falconer, op. cit., pp. 146-51 and 152-5
106
beneficent, then in the first place, the more men they benefit, the more helpers they
will have in acting kindly. Secondly, the custom of being beneficent will make them
the readier to deserve well of many and, so to speak, more practiced at it.”284 The
beneficent will help friends out by assuming their debts, helping to fund the marriages
of their daughters, providing them with the means to buy property, supporting them
when they seek higher office.285 Cicero’s letters provide several examples of these
commendationes or interventions with the powerful on behalf of friends and clients.
To Acilius, the proconsul, he recommends Marcus Clodius Archagathus and Gaeus
Clodius Philo with the hope that Acilius will “accommodate them in all respects.”
Elsewhere, he asks that Acilius intervene on behalf of Hippias, whose property is
“being held by the state.” As Acilius is in a position to intervene, Cicero asks him
“to extricate him from his difficulty and to accommodate him in this and other
matters.” In the case of Titurnus, Cicero asks that Acilius give appropriate
assurances so that Titurnus will know that Cicero is “a sufficiently powerful
patron.”286 Perhaps Servius will take on Lyso as a client, Cicero asks. Obviously, he
did not believe that it would be inappropriate to make these requests of individuals
holding office, and, one may presume, he was untroubled when similar requests were
made of him when he served as a magistrate. This was the normal give and take of
decent society. In fine, provided the matter did not involve shameful acts (turpitudo),
friends should be helped even in “somewhat unjust” (minus iustae) matters.287
284Duties, p. 83 (2.53) 285Duties, pp.84 (2.56) and 87 (2.61) Cf. De Oratore 3.133 286Shackleton-Bailey, Letters, pp. 453-4 (13.19), 469 (13.32), 472 (13.37), and 473 (13.39) 287De Amicitia 61 = Falconer, op. cit., pp. 170-1
107
Turning to friends or their clients as needed to get things done was simply a natural
part of the official’s life. These people represented just one more set of persons, next
to accensi and apparitores, to be relied upon for carrying out one’s duties.
Roman officials in theory and practice relied on several kinds of persons to
carry out their duties. These could be friends or clients, accensi or apparitores.
While the apparitores were quasi-professionals paid by the state, accensi were
frequently freedmen from the office holder’s household or that of a friend. These
men were supposed to serve their bosses loyally. Indeed, this is the force of Cicero’s
recommendation that his brother use freedmen as accensi so that he might exert a
master’s control over them. If in practice this was not always the case, the
representation of these helpers in Livy suggests that this was at least the theory:
besides, “always” rarely applies to real life. In Livy, these helpers are generally non-
entities unless they deserve mention for some unusual reason. Apparitores named by
Livy only exist as events. Perhaps one reveals legal secrets, another finds Numa’s
religious books. The point is not the scribae in those two cases, but the event. For
Livy these staffs never transcend their function: to become an aedile is to stop being a
scribe, to find Numa’s artifacts is to make the function disappear into the background.
The staffs are background persons, carrying out their tasks. Moreover, the social
circumstance of Rome was such that magistrates might augment the services of these
staffs. Friends and dependents were critical for getting things done: securing
assistance for one person would allow for the favor to be requited later. For Cicero
magistrates are decision-makers and originators of policy. Ordinary plebs might
approve or deny proposals, but office holders by social and constitutional right
108
enjoyed the privilege of presenting them their choices. Only Cicero’s ideal
magistrates had the combination of will and ability, experience and knowledge,
needed to serve as law personified. To be sure, the frustrating reality was that a
magistrate’s ignorance could actually put him at the mercy of his staff. But that did
not change the fact that it was magistrates who mattered. Choices were for them; it
was for others to carry out their decision. This was the assumption of Republican
administration.
109
Chapter 4
Modernity and Bureaucratic Servility
Woodrow Wilson famously argued more than a century ago that the time was
ripe for the “science of administration.”288 As he saw it, this would introduce
efficiency of effort and expenditure to the government of the United States. Life had
now become complex, as opposed to the way it was in simpler times, and
administration grounded on principles developed in the traditions of centralized
government found in France and, particularly, in Germany, but adapted to the
circumstance of American democracy, would succeed in making the government’s
operations “more businesslike.” After all, as he said, “the field of administration is
the field of business.”289 Thus, America would need a cadre of officials trained in
this discipline, imbued with the idea that administration and politics were separate
domains, the former oriented towards the particular application of laws arising from
288W. Wilson, “The Study of Administration,” Political Science Quarterly 2.2 (June 1887), pp. 197-222; Karl offers useful summary background to the Wilson article. op. cit., fn. 2, supra. 289ibid., p. 209. Cf. the views of Saint-Simon who argues repeatedly that a management class of business has the experience, interest, and wherewithal necessary to administer government. G. Ionescu, ed., The Political Thought of Saint-Simon, Oxford, 1976. For historical background to the rise of bureaucratic business structures and professional management, see A. Chandler, The Visible Hand: The Managerial Revolution in American Business, Cambridge, 1977. Professional management was a later development that coincided with the depersonalization of corporate ownership, what Chandler describes as a transition from the entrepreneurial to the managerial firm where “full-time executives dominate top as well as middle management.” p. 415 This development was driven by new scales of enterprise resulting from mergers, and actually lags Wilson’s article (Chs. 12 and 13, passim) Nevertheless, a substantial degree of bureaucratization, spurred by these vast scales of the enterprise, had been achieved by the railroads. It would appear that in the railroads, top management focused on strategic matters, leaving local matters to middle management in a way that seems to parallel Wilson’s idea about a degree of discretion residing in senior officials. pp.143-8
110
the latter. There would be no need to fear the rise of a separate caste operating in its
own interests for two reasons. First, public opinion, despite the multitude of “selfish,
ignorant, timid, stubborn, or foolish” Americans would serve as a check and
guarantee of official responsiveness, and this check would be a necessary balance to
the “large power and unhampered discretion” needed by bureaucrats to carry out their
duties.290 And, secondly, officialdom’s “good behavior” would be defined in terms of
“their allegiance to the policy of government.”291 Responsibility would lie with heads
of services who could not carry out their tasks if they were “mere passive
instruments.”292 Thus, discretion would appear to lay with the seniors, while their
subordinates, in fact, would have to wait their turn, perhaps, someday to exercise
similar latitude.
Wilson argued that the failure of political science to address administration for
so long was due to the change in the complexity of government and the fact that who
legislates was until relatively recently the pressing question. In his words, “[i]t is
getting to be harder to run a constitution than to form one.” (emphasis in original)
Actually, his claim is only partially true. Its validity certainly lies in the emphasis
placed by political theory on the issue of who is the government. The classical
tradition was primarily oriented, for example, to the ordering of institutions or the
organization of the political community, and the role of citizens as magistrates of
their own government. But there were implications yet to be appreciated regarding
the roles to be played by those who might actually assist those magistrates in the
290Quotations from p. 208 and 213. 291p. 216. 292pp. 213-4, quotation from p. 212.
111
execution of their duties. Although magistrates might rely on their own social
networks to accomplish some tasks, they would also assuredly take advantage, as
needed, of slaves and other kinds of underlings – the kinds of persons whose social
condition specifically constrained their actions. After all, magistrates would have the
power to judge and command; their roles called for deliberation and deciding. Their
subordinates, ideally at least, would in truth be their “passive instruments.”293 But
there is more. For more modern writers of political philosophy did address the role of
magistrates in relation to the sovereign.
The relationship between magistrates and ministers, on the one hand, and their
sovereign, on the other, is an issue taken up in varying degrees of detail by
Machiavelli, Bodin, and Rousseau, to name a few. Their concern reflects a
realization that officers of the state exercised a power that could actually challenge
the sovereign. Thus, despite their diversity of thought, the consistent answer
developed by them to the problem was to emphasize the ultimate subordination of the
magistrates too, their conversion in some sense into the sovereign’s public slaves.
And when the people stormed the gates of sovereignty, Rousseau was absolute in his
assertion that, though citizens, the people in their role as ministers of the public will
would themselves have to surrender to it.294 Indeed, Tocqueville said that striking a
293Cf. F. Goodnow, Politics and Administration: A Study in Government, New York, 1967 [1900], p. 88. 294On Social Contract or Principles of Political Right 3.18 in A. Ritter and J. Bondanella, edd., Rousseau’s Political Writings, New York, 1988, p. 146; R. Derathé et al., edd., Jean-Jacques Rousseau: Oeuvres Complètes, Pléiade, Paris, 1966, v. 3, p. 434: “…les dépositaires de la puissance exécutive ne sont point les maîtres du peuple mais ses officiers, qu’il peut les établir et les destituer quand il lui plaît, qu’il n’est point question pour eux de contracter, mais d’obéir…ne font que remplir leur devoir de Citoyens, sans avoir en aucune sorte le droit de disputer sur les conditions.”
112
balance among the principles of centralization, representation, and equality was
something historically unique and difficult to accomplish.295 But theory is one thing,
practice another. For despite the development within political theory of an ideology
of official subservience, modern thinking has through the rise of sociology and
related “sciences”, for example, come also to emphasize the idea that human beings
regardless of formal constraint do not always do what they are told, a point hinted at
by a frustrated Cicero in his comment about the disparity in legal knowledge between
magistrates and their scribes.296 Notwithstanding a strong emphasis in the later
literature of sociology, public administration, and political science on the frustrating
independence of bureaucrats, there has been consistently voiced in political theory an
argument emphasizing that officials were servants in a very literal sense, tasked with
(emphasis added) H. Mansfield’s observation that “…everywhere in the West the modern state was, or was the work of, a monarchy” is a propos. “On the Impersonality of the Modern State: a Comment on Machiavelli’s Use of Stato,” American Political Science Review 77.4 (Dec. 1983), pp. 849-57, quotation from p. 855b. The development from stato as a thing to be acquired into an impersonal abstraction is nicely echoed in the shift from entrepreneurial to managerial corporations. Under the entrepreneurial system, company founders and their descendants “continued to look on their business empires as personal property to personally managed….” (emphasis added) Chandler, op. cit., p. 381 295La Centralisation Administrative et le Système Représentatif, in A. Jardin, Tocqueville: Oeuvres, Pléiade, Paris, 1991, v. 1, p. 1114: “Ce qui arrive en ce moment parmi nous est tout nouveau dans l’histoire du monde.... Nous voulons fair coexister en même temps, sur le même sol, trois choses qui n’ont jamais été réunies nulle part: la centralisation administrative, le gouvernement représentatif et l’égalité.” This article was originally published in 1844. 296D. Warwick writes, for example, “Given Weber’s overarching concern with rationality and efficiency in organizational design, it is understandable that he paid little heed to such antirational factors as constituency influences, bargaining alliances, and internal conflicts.” A Theory of Public Bureaucracy, Cambridge, 1978, p. 184 It is not always easy to decide whether Weber’s writings are descriptive or prescriptive. Cicero, Laws, p. 174 (3.48): “…most people holding office, because of their ignorance of the law, are just as knowledgeable as their assistants want them to be (tantum sapere quantum apparitores velint).”
113
faithfully executing the decisions of the sovereign. The present chapter is concerned
with examining this ideology, leaving the persistent problem of official discretion to
the next.
If there is one important development to note, it is the idea that depoliticized
professionalism combined with the right mixture of rules and law would be a means
of ensuring the dutiful obedience of public servants.297 In other words, there is a
palpable shift from the idea that officials might be kept in line through fear,
elimination, or, in the case of a republic, a kind of honorial emulation, as Machiavelli
suggested, to the relatively novel idea that loyalty might be the product of an ethos
generated through proper education.298 This is precisely what Wilson with German
and French models in mind suggested.299 Yet the point to bear in mind is that this
297The goal in 18th century Prussia was to create “…an army of secretaries that would constitute a small and non-capricious element of a larger, well-oiled machine.” R. Michalski, Creon’s Secretaries: Theories of Bureaucracy and Social Order in 18th and Early19th Century Prussia, Ann Arbor, 2009, dissertation, pp. 55-83, quotation from p. 75. W. Dorn notes that the Prussian bureaucracy of the18th century was “dominated by règlement.” (p. 407) Of course, for all that, he also notes that theory and practice were not always coterminous (pp. 416-20). “The Prussian Bureaucracy in the Eighteenth Century, Political Science Quarterly 46.3 (Sep. 1931), pp. 403-23. On the professional official, see A. Wood, Hegel: Elements of the Philosophy of Right, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2007 [1991], pp. 332-6; M. Weber, The Profession and Vocation of Politics in P. Lassman and R. Speirs, Weber: Political Writings, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2010 [1994], pp. 330-1; Goodnow, op. cit., p. 84ff; F. Morstein-Marx, The Administrative State, Chicago, 1957, pp. 24-5, 41-2, and 47-9. Speaking of the British Civil Service’s “professional ethic” M. Quinlan writes: “…our job is to offer career-long service to the best of our ability and irrespective of personal liking….” “Ethics in Public Service,” Governance 6 (1997), pp 538-44, quotation at p. 540. 298“honorial emulation” is, of course, a nod to T. Veblen’s idea of “pecuniary emulation” according to which people pursue social esteem and envy through the accumulation of wealth. Theory of the Leisure Class, New York, 1994 [1899], ch. 2. C. Lynch’s interpretive essay in his Niccolò Machiavelli: Art of War, Chicago, 2003, pp. 207-8. 299On the importance of Germany and France for conceptions of the state, see J. Nettl, “The State as a Conceptual Variable,” World Politics 20.4 (Jul., 1968), pp. 559-92,
114
professionalism represents the internalization of a servile ethos. A senior official may
retain some measure of discretion, but exercised according to the rules which he
observes and the ethic with which he imbued, his reward for loyal duty being the
honor and satisfaction that derive therefrom.
The present chapter, then, will explore the view in modern political theory that
sets officialdom’s role as one of subordination to sovereignty, a role that evokes, yet
in modern formulation, goes beyond some aspects traditional theories formulations.
Yet, if Greek and Roman theory was explicit in its acknowledgement that these
subordinate staffs were slaves, modern theory evades the shame of that association by
recasting bureaucratic servility in terms of official honor. For all that, theory and
practice have been at odds, and the more the reality of uncontrolled discretion has
manifested itself in the literature of sociology and public administration, the more the
dilemma of control has come to the fore. It must be remembered that the goal in a
democracy is to have the will of the people, the sovereign, obeyed. What is forgotten
in all this is that these officials are citizens themselves, and it will be this element that
the next chapter will explore. For now, the focus is on officials as servants to their
sovereign.
Niccolò Machiavelli is usually taken as the initiator of modern political
theory. Whether his views were sincerely Republican or not is a debated matter of
interpretation that has oscillated with the concerns of commentators since his
esp. p. 567; on France for the development of administrative law, see L. Mannori and B. Sordi, “Science of Administration and Administrative Law,” in D. Canale et al., edd., A History of the Philosophy of Law in the Civil Law World, 1600-1900, (A Treatise of Legal Philosophy and General Jurisprudence, v. 9), New York, 2009, pp. 225-61.
115
publications first appeared. Thus, his work was initially vilified as anti-Republican,
only to be rediscovered as a Republican, only to be reassessed as anti-Republican,
only most recently to be found again to be Republican.300 Perhaps nothing is less
certain. At any rate, whatever Machiavelli’s overarching commitment, the problem
of ministerial or magisterial independence is addressed both in the Prince and the
Discourses on Livy.301 In its essentials, the problem for the prince is a matter of how
to ensure the loyalty of his ministers, or ensure that they do not form a plot to
assassinate and replace him. In a republic, the problem is how to provide an
institutional or social environment in which magistrates or commanders do not so
resent the state’s failure to show gratitude for deeds done that they mobilize their own
retainers to seize power for themselves. In both cases, the issue is how to ensure that
the sovereign, be it single or multiple, is not threatened or overthrown by its
300On Machiavelli’s changing fortunes, see H. Baron, “Machiavelli: The Republican Citizen and the Author of ‘the Prince’,” The English Historical Review 76.299 (April 1961), p. 217-53. M. Viroli’s argument for Machiavelli’s republicanism, with its overwrought emphasis on his debt to the rhetorical tradition, seems particularly trivializing and unpersuasive. Machiavelli, Oxford, 1998. It is odd that he can cite Baron’s essay approvingly and claim at the same time that “…Machiavelli’s reputation as a republican theorist is a solid acquisition.” p. 115 If anything, Baron’s study suggests that it is anything but solid. For a robust critique of Machiavelli’s text as a kind of tyrant’s vademecum, see Bodin’s preface to his first French edition. K. McRae, Jean Bodin: The Six Bookes of a Commonweale, Cambridge, 1962, pp. A69-70; G. Mairet, ed., Jean Bodin: Les six livres de la République, Paris, 1993, pp. 46-51 Equally banal is Viroli’s reading of Machiavelli and Rousseau: “Republic and Politics in Machiavelli and Rousseau,” History of Political Thought 10.3 (Autumn 1989), pp. 405-20. 301Q. Skinner and R. Price, edd., Machiavelli: The Prince, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2005 [1988]; H. Mansfield and N. Tarcov, trans., Niccolò Machiavelli: Discourses on Livy, Chicago, 1998; M. Bonfantini, ed., Niccolò Machiavelli: Opere, Milan, (no date), La Letteratura Italiana: Storia e Testi, v. 29. The implications for bureaucracy to be found in the Prince differ from those of the Discourses, which is, perhaps, not too surprising since they speak of different regimes.
116
servants.302 The prince in civil principality must either rule directly or through public
officials, which renders him vulnerable because he depends on “the goodwill (la
voluntà) of those citizens who act as [his] officials.”303 Moreover, these officials
themselves can develop a constituency of their own because citizens become, in a
case of indirect rule, habituated to obeying them, not the prince. Machiavelli
explicitly states that one aspect of the solution lies creating a dependency on him and
his government (bisogno dello stato e di lui), dependency, of course, being a mark of
servility.304 But of what is the government to consist, if not the prince and those with
302It is significant that Machiavelli displaces the classical political typology of monarchy, oligarchy or aristocracy, and democracy, with “a principality, a republic, or anarchy (o principato o libertà o licenzia).” Prince, p. 34 (Ch. 9: The Civil Principality) This suggests an acceptance of a long, aristocratic tradition that found democracy terrifying, and saw in republic (libertà) a freedom assured by power in the hands of the right people. See Saxonhouse, op. cit.; Held, op. cit., pp. 33-4; Keane, op. cit., pp. 59 and 161-5.; A. Ryan, op. cit., v.1, pp. 68-9 and v. 2, pp. 818-9 Cf. J. Bryce’s relatively circumspect comments. Modern Democracies, London, 1929, v. 1, pp. 185-6 and 204-5. 303Prince, ibid., p. 37. Although he advocates the prince’s direct rule here, in Discourses he suggests that the prince who would control a free community should mask his “dominion.” Discourses, p. 177 (2.21) As is usual with Machiavelli, maxims are not necessarily absolute, but must be matched to particular cases. Cf. the case of the Latins who only came to realize that they had, in fact, been subjects of the Roman Empire. Discourses, pp. 155-6 (2.13.2) and p. 160 (2.16.1) 304Discussed by Mansfield, in “Stato,” p. 853. Some objections should be made regarding Mansfield’s comments. First, his discussion of the difference between the modern term, state, and the words in the Classical authors (p. 850) is not thoroughly convincing. To claim that the ancients did not have a word for “state” is merely to assert, perhaps tendentiously, that the words they use did not mean state. That is possible, but it begs the question: what word would they have used for the idea under consideration? Similarly, his claim that constitutions embodied society (p. 850) as well is misleading. Society is famously seen as a modern idea, yet it is hard to see how the arrangement of institutions were anything more than one kind of social manifestation. Finally, while the force of personality was indeed great in the ancient world, it is important to recall that the offices (arkhai/magistratus) were things, not persons, and, as such, existed apart from the people who held them. p. 851 How else could they have been discussed apart from the persons who held office? And yet they were.
117
whom he surrounds himself in dependency? Thus, implicitly, another aspect of the
solution lies, in part, in the need to assimilate the interests of these men to the
sovereign’s. For the prince must be cognizant of those nobles who align their success
with his and those who do not, but the latter may represent a permanent threat.305 Of
the former, the prince is to “honor and esteem” them. Of the latter, there is a further
division between those who are pusillanimous (pusillanimatà) and, therefore,
potentially useful (tu ti debbi servire di quelli massime che sono di buono consiglio),
and those who might have the will and wherewithal to replace the prince himself.
Not that all these nobles would serve in a prince’s consistory, but clearly those that
might would either be loyal because of a union of interests or too weak-willed to do
other than be in his service. Such could be all the prince’s men.
To secure and maintain his position, the prince should rely upon fear and love,
mercy and cruelty.306 Machiavelli famously inverted Cicero’s faith in the power of
love (diligi) to bind men together in a polity.307 Machiavelli had little faith in the
mirror of the prince tradition that, starting with Seneca, asserted the prince’s duty as
305Prince, ibid., p. 35. In this regard, Machiavelli notes that it is a minority who “desires to be free so as to command (commandare), but all the others (sc., ordinary commons), who are infinite, desire freedom so as to live secure (vivere securi).” H. Mansfield and N. Tarcov, trans., Niccolò Machiavelli: Discourses on Livy, Chicago, 1998, p. 46 (1.16.5) Of those who seek command, one must either “[get] rid of them (levargli via) or [have] them share in so many honors….” ibid. 306Prince, pp. 58-61 (Ch. 17) Cruelty must be well executed. p. 33 (Ch. 8) 307Cicero, Duties, pp. 70-1 (2.23-4). Cicero, who sees Caesar as exemplifying the point, quotes Ennius: “They hate the men they fear; and whom one hates, one would have dead.” Significantly, he compares the use of violent oppression (vi oppressos) of free men in republic to the treatment of slave by their masters (ut eris in famulos).
118
self-sacrifice in the service of the political community’s greater good.308 This was
profoundly unrealistic for him, who saw man as motivated by primarily private
interest.309 To be sure, he argues, love is nice, if one can get it. But failing that, and
most princes would indeed fail, one must rely on fear while being careful not to
engender hatred. He concludes, if a choice is to be made, “…it is much safer to be
fear than loved.”310 The crux of the matter is that men are fundamentally unreliable
and tend to their own interests. While they might become friends, they may very well
turn away in a prince’s time of need or weakness. Love too is maintained through
gratitude, which requires constant maintenance. Indeed, as noted in the Discourses, it
was a sense of the Republic’s ingratitude for services rendered that led to Caesar’s
decision to seize power.311 Yet, fear, engendered by the certainty of punishment,
keeps them ever hesitant to break faith. This is a fear, however, that should not lead
to hatred.312 To illustrate his point, he compares the methods of Hannibal and
Scipio.313 The former exhibited an “inhuman cruelty (inumana crudeltà)” that
produced fear in his men, allowing him thereby to maintain control over an army
308On Mercy in J. Cooper and J. Procopé, Seneca: Moral and Political Essays, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2009 [1995], pp. 117-64. “Of all men, however, mercy becomes no man more than a king or a prince,” Seneca tells Nero. p. 132 (1.3.3) 309See the analysis of V. Sullivan, Machiavelli’s Three Romes, DeKalb, 1996, pp. 66-72. 310ibid., p. 59. 311Discourses, p. 66 (1.29.3) 312The case of Remirro de Orco suggests one method for dealing with hatred when it is produced by the harsh policies of one’s agents. Prince, p. 26 (Ch. 7) If Cesare Borgia benefited himself by killing de Orco, Maximinus Thrax missed the opportunity by failing to act when his prefects, on his orders, behaved cruelty in a way that brought hatred upon him. p. 70 (Ch. 19) 313ibid., p. 60 (Ch. 17) Note that the “humane and benevolent (umani e benigni)” dispositions of Pertinax and Severus Alexander were their undoing. Marcus Aurelius, however, was saved from this flaw because he was a rightful heir and did not owe his position to either the soldiery or the people. p. 67-8 (Ch. 19)
119
composed of soldiers from different countries and cultures. Scipio, however, was
over-indulgent (troppo sua pietà) and easy going (natura facile). As a result, Fabius
Maximus accused him of corrupting the army, and a subordinate officer was able to
ravage the community at Locri. Machiavelli concludes that, but for the Senate’s
control (sotto il governo del Senato), his reputation would have not been what it was.
The lesson to be drawn is that fear is superior to love precisely because love depends
on the disposition of he who loves, while fear depends on the disposition of the prince
himself. The one depends on the subject, the other on the prince.
The use of cruelty and fear, however, is not absolute. A wise prince must
calibrate these tools to circumstances. Specifically, one must judge rightly whether
one is dealing with subjects or equals. In considering the cases of Quintius
Capitolinus and Appius Claudius, Machiavelli comes up with examples that appear to
contradict the lessons of Hannibal and Scipio.314 For Appius was “cruel and coarse
(crudele e rozzo),” and, as a result, his men scarcely obeyed him. Quintius was of
“kind and humane disposition (benigno e di umano ingegno)” and proved victorious
with his men. This leads to a further conclusion, based upon whether the men being
commanded are “partners” or “subject.” With partners, that is, persons of relatively
equal standing, one cannot “use punishment entirely,” nor the severity recommended
by Tacitus.315 With subjects, however, one “ought to turn rather to punishment than
to compliance so that they do not become insolent and do not trample on you because
of too much easiness (troppa facilità)….” Of course, this use of cruelty is tempered
by the proviso that one should not use it excessively, lest one be hated. Just as the
314Discourses, pp. 260-1 (3.19) 315Machiavelli’s quotation cannot be identified in the Tacitean corpus.
120
prince should rely on fear – fearing being within his control – so he should rely on
cruelty, yet in no case should this be taken to extremes for hatred imperils the
prince.316
Whether or not Machiavelli has in the back of his mind, Cicero’s explicit
mention that masters use punishment with their slaves, it is worth noting the
appearance of punishment as the manifestation of the cruelty which he espouses. The
subordination of those subjected to cruelty and fear is noteworthy and becomes more
emphatic when one considers that Machiavelli similarly suggests that a people living
in a subordinate condition acquires the habit of servility.317 Yet this is exactly the
condition that the prince requires of those who would minister to him. These men
must be dependent on the prince for honors, and they must be reined in by the threat
of certain punishment.318 Punishment, of course, must be sure, and it should not be
arbitrary and gratuitous. Nor should it be applied to any and all: decimation provides
an example of using the punishment of a few to reinforce and reinvigorate the loyalty
of the many through the introduction of persistent fear.319 The implication for the
prince is that control over the stato is retained through fear and cruelty, in the right
measure and at the right time, as well as the gift of fitting rewards given to avoid
resentments that inevitably arise from ingratitude. Thus will he retain the assistance
316Prince, pp. 63-72 (Ch. 19) “One of the best safeguards that a ruler has against plots is not being hated by the people.” p. 64 317Discourses, p. 44 (1.16) Cf. Florence’s subordination to Rome, which rendered it abject “without thinking of itself,” which means that it had to think of another, i.e., Rome. Discourses, pp. 100-1 (1.49.2-3) 318Independent gentlemen, endowed castles and personal retainers, require a greater force in order to bring them to heel. Discourses, pp. 111-2 (1.55.4) 319Discourses, p. 309 (3.49) Cf. the idea that punishment and fear carried out periodically to ensure that powerful individuals do not arise. p. 211 (3.1.3)
121
of those nobles whom he does not eliminate when he takes power, being those nobles
who are pliant and useful or able to see the possibility of realizing their interests
through him. These men are subordinate and dependent: they are servile and subject
to his bidding, a condition that can be assured so long as the prince does not incur
their hatred or contempt.
A republic, however, because it consists of free men, demands different means
to ensure that no one noble seizes power and institutes tyranny. Machiavelli
essentially argues that the loyalty of nobles is secured partly by ensuring that these
men not have the capacity to develop private networks of retainers with whom they
can challenge the republic, and partly by a divide-and-conquer approach that
institutes a rivalry for honor and glory among leading men.320 In the Discourses, he
makes a careful distinction between powerful men who develop their reputations by
public means and those who act privately or, one might say, secretly.321 One gains a
good reputation publicly “by counseling well, by working better in the common
benefit…. One ought to open to citizens the way to this honor and to put up rewards
both for counsel and for works so that they have to be honored and satisfied with
them.” This echoes the advice to the prince, although here the prince’s position is
held by the people, hence the need for public words and deeds. Essentially, it
amounts to proper rewards, i.e., gratitude, when these great men align their interests
320Not allowing magistrates to continue in the same office is another dimension of avoiding the rise of a powerful figure. Discourses, pp. 269-70 (3.24) Cf. the distinction made in the Art of War between those who make soldiery their art and those who do not, the former posing a special danger to a republic. pp. 15 (1.64-6) and 17-8 (1.87-9) Cf. Prince, pp. 68 and 70 (Ch. 19) where Machiavelli discusses the power of the soldiery and the defects of Commodus and Maximinus Thrax. 321p. 276-7 (3.28)
122
with the republic’s. Yet building private influence leads to the building of a network
that spells danger for the republic. It is striking, here, that Machiavelli specifically
contradicts what Cicero had approved in On Duties. Thus, Machiavelli states that
“[t]he private ways are doing benefit to this and that other private individual – by
lending him money, marrying his daughters for him, defending him from magistrates,
and doing for him similar private favors that make men partisans to oneself….”322
Cicero, it will be recalled, in distinguishing between the extravagant and the liberal
man, had identified the latter as someone who would “ransom captives from bandits,
or assume their friends’ debts, or help them to finance their daughters’ marriage, or
give them assistance in acquiring and enlarging their property.”323 Obviously,
networks thus built, being private, would accrue to the noble alone, rendering him
more powerful and dangerous to a republic, which is constructed of free and
politically equal men. But this is only one dimension of keeping magistrates loyal to
the republic; another can be inferred from Machiavelli’s consideration of the risks
posed by successful army commanders.
Successful captains are dangerous to the prince precisely because their success
brings glory directly to them, not the prince. Machiavelli argues, “…a prince should
go personally on expeditions…. For if they win, the glory and the acquisition are all
theirs; and when they are not present…the glory is someone else’s….”324 This puts
322Cf. Art of War, p. 15 (1.67) 323Duties, pp. 84 (2.56) and 87 (2.61-2) 324Discourses, p. 67 (1.30); cf. Art of War, pp. 16-7 (1.78-83): “…if a king does not order himself so that his infantrymen may be content in time of peace to return home and to live from their arts (sc., peaceful arts), of necessity must come to ruin, for a more dangerous infantry is not found than that which is composed of those who make war their art.”
123
the commander in the position of either bestowing all glory on the prince and living
with whatever ingratitude might come, or seizing power himself. Another option is to
bide his time, developing the loyalty of his troops and subjects, doubtless for later
action. That is the problem for the prince’s consideration. For the republic, when
sending commanders into battle, the key is to allow enough leading men to rise, such
that their ambitions and jealousies keep them in competition with each other.325 At
Rome, when not yet corrupt, this created a situation in which commanders hid their
ambition and derived glory even from laying down office.326 The thirst and
competition for glory achieved through the bestowal of office ensures, he argues, that
the people in general need not fear from their commanders. Doubtless this is helped
when terms of office are limited in time and not held serially, and when the republic
itself is militaristic. It is not a concern for the common weal, as Lynch points out, but
a desire to retain glory combined with the knowledge that glory is earned and retained
in competition with like-spirited men.327 The implication from the principle
regarding military commands is that magistrates too should be multiple and so
arranged that they align their interests with the republic and achieve glory by public
means. The more important aspect of Machiavelli’s advice is the problem that it is
meant to forestall, even if only for a time: discretion in the service of private
interests.328 In other words, the issue at hand is how to get officials to carry out the
sovereign’s will, be it singular, as with a prince, or plural, as with a republic. The
325Art of War, p. 17 (1.86) 326Art of War, pp. 15-6 (1.68-72) 327Lynch, op. cit., p. 208. His full discussion of this issue is pp. 207-12. 328Shumer, “Machiavelli: Republican Politics and Its Corruption,” Political Theory 7.1 (Feb., 1979), pp. 5-34
124
would-be prince needs for his officials to carry out his wishes, as if they were their
own, hence the desire to have nobles align their interests with his; the republic
likewise must ensure that no one individual rises to a position from which he might
make himself prince, although it is a regime that provides an arena where great men
vie for glory. The desired end in its essence evokes the implications of the classical
position: the wish for subordinates to execute faithfully the will of their superiors.
Although political scientists usually identify Machiavelli as the first of the
modern theorists, in many respects he remains firmly rooted in his predecessors, and
one is often left to conclude that inverting ancient moral advice and setting political
effectiveness as the measure of success seems a rather paltry means of heralding the
arrival of modern political theory.329 Indeed, if Machiavelli claims to propound
politics as they are rather than as they should be, then Aristotle the empiricist
certainly presages such an approach. At a more fundamental level, Machiavelli’s
approach is deeply personal: it is concerned with the actions of men in a way that is
quite at home in the ancient world. There is nothing impersonal or transcendent
about the state, whether it is held by the prince or by great men occupying
magistracies and captaincies. However one may wish to judge that matter, it really is
Jean Bodin who charts new territory.330 For Bodin makes the abstract idea of
329Arendt notes that Machiavelli first envisioned a secularized politics that could break the anacyclosis of regimes that was and for many remained a fundamental assumption about the nature of the political. On Revolution, p. 36; the concept of anacyclosis in Polybius, see the comments of Brink and Walbank. C. Brink, and F. Walbank, “The Construction of the Sixth Book of Polybius,” Classical Quarterly 4.3/4 (Jul.-Oct., 1954), pp. 97-122, at pp. 110-3 330Even if his concept of sovereignty has earlier precursors, Bodin is the point of reference for the subsequent tradition. Despite the importance of Hobbes, this study will not focus on his work because it would largely only serve to reinforce what can
125
sovereignty or maiestas central to his understanding of politics, and his theory is
fundamental to later conceptions of the state and the public servant.331 For the
popular revolutions of subsequent centuries, and ultimately democratic theory itself,
dependent as they are on the idea of the collective people as sovereign, amount to
little more than a replacement of one man as sovereign by one people as sovereign.332
be drawn from Bodin. At any rate, the deductive and quasi-scientific approach of Hobbes obscures whatever debt he may have had to Bodin. As Dunning noted a century ago, “…from different starting-points and by different routes, the two reached the same goal.” W. Dunning, “Jean Bodin on Sovereignty,” Political Science Quarterly 11.1 (Mar. 1896), pp. 82-104, quotation from p. 84. Hoekstra seems to take for granted a direct connection that is not immediately apparent from the Leviathan or On the Citizen (De Cive). K. Hoekstra, “Early Modern Absolutism and Constitutionalism,” Cardozo Law Review 34 (2013), pp. 1079-98. It is, after all, striking that Malcolm’s chapter on Hobbes in the Cambridge History makes no mention of any relationship or debt to Bodin. N. Malcolm, “Hobbes and Spinoza,” in Burns, ed., op. cit., p. 530ff. Perhaps it is unremarkable that the chapter on Hobbes in Strauss and Cropsey makes no reference to Bodin given the completely dehistoricized and decontextualized stance adopted by their approach. L. Strauss and J. Cropsey, edd., History of Political Philosophy, Chicago, 1987 [1963]. 331Establishing the text of Bodin’s famous book on government is complicated by the fact that it went through multiple editions in French that have various differences among them and a Latin edition that was Bodin’s own work, but not a verbatim translation of the original. These complications can be left to specialists. For present purposes, references will be made to the selections in J. Franklin, ed., Bodin: On Sovereignty, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2008 [1992], which contains Bodin’s 1.8, 1.10, 2.1, and 2.5; the 17th century English translation of Richard Knolles, reprinted in McRae, op. cit.; and the modernized French edition of Mairet, op. cit., which, although an abridgment, contains most of the text. Obviously, where any edition is lacking, there will be no reference to them. For discussions of the various texts, one may consult the comments in the editions of Franklin and McRae. 332This development has been interpreted as man stepping into the shoes of the displaced monarch, human or divine. Note that Bodin himself allows for sovereignty “in the people.” 2.5 = McRae, op. cit., p. 221B/C; Franklin, Bodin, p. 114; Mairet, op. cit., p. 223 For the transfer of the divine mysteria to the secular realm, see E. Kantorowicz, “Mysteries of State: An Absolutist Concept and Its Late Mediaeval Origins,” Harvard Theological Review 48.1 (Jan., 1955), pp. 65-91. For the view that the nation stepped into the role of the king, see Arendt, op. cit., p. 156 For an interesting critique of the concept of sovereignty precisely because it implies something exogenous to humanity, see J. Maritain, Man and the State, Chicago, 1953, Ch. 2 To Maritain, it makes no sense to argue that a people or its creature can step
126
One might say that the concept best suited to describe this is the transformation from
monarchy to demarchy rather than the democracy, a term that puts the matter of
power in the forefront and was originally polemical.333 At any rate, for Bodin
sovereignty is marked by two basic features: indivisibility and perpetuity, which
together allow no political space to rival claimants and render all else within the
political community subordinate, or, in the words of Mairet, reduce the political
community to a matter of the one versus the many.334 This idea’s nachleben informs
later conceptions of the state, no matter the institutional form.335 Absolutist theory is
pliable and sufficiently useful to make way eventually for the people itself, once seen
collectively as a nation, or perhaps even law itself, to step in as absolute sovereign.336
outside itself to be the sovereign. For a more modern version of this approach, see S. van Duffel, who, curiously, does not acknowledge that Maritain had previously argued for God being the only logical candidate for sovereignty. “Sovereignty as a Religious Concept,” Monist 90.1 (2007), pp. 126-43 333On demokratia and its derivatives, see R. Sealey, “The Origins of ‘Demokratia’,” California Studies in Classical Antiquity 6 (1973), pp. 253-95 334Mairet, op. cit., pp. 34-5. Interestingly, the modern salafist concept of tawhid, which insists on Allah’s complete and indivisible sovereignty, dovetails nicely with Bodin’s idea about the sovereign’s nature. Radical salafists reject democracy precisely because the idea of man as legislator contradicts the notion of the divine legislator who, by definition, has no partner (la sharika). See, for example, S. al-Fawzan, Concise Commentary on the Book of Tawhid, Riyadh, 2009 [2005], Ch. 37, 38, and 59 The French rendering both of “unity” in Bodin’s sense and of tawhid is, tellingly, the same: unicité. Cf. Elshtain’s passing comment in her Sovereignty: God, State, and Self, New York, 2008, p. p. 134. 335Of course, the dominant conception of the state is Western. See, for example, C., Coercion, Capital, and European States, New York, 1992; C. Young, The African Colonial State in Comparative Perspective, New Haven, 1997; S. David, “The Primacy of Internal War,” in S. Neuman, ed., International Relations Theory and the Third World, New York, 1998, pp. 77-101; J. Herbst, States and Power in Africa, Princeton, 2000. 336On the law as sovereign, see C. Schmitt, Political Theology, Chicago, 2005 [1985], Chs. 2 and 3. Rawls, whose work, given his totalizing concept of rationality and obsessive proceduralism, is not meaningfully democratic, pluralist, or political in nature, falls into this category. A Theory of Justice, Cambridge, 1999 [1971]
127
Bodin defines sovereignty as “…the absolute and perpetual power of the
commonwealth.”337 The Latin version of his definition is telling because it includes
the key phrase, soluta legibus, or “freed from the laws.” The sovereign, then, is
above and external to the political community in the following sense: it is the source
of law, able to modify or abrogate it at will.338 Of course, it should be noted that this
absolute sovereign is not, in Bodin’s understanding, completely unlimited.339 The
sovereign’s exemption from laws, of which he is the ultimate source, guarantor, and
judge, in no way frees him from divine or natural law, which serve as an ever-present
backdrop to his own activity.340 The limitation on his will then relates to the split
between the divine and secular realms, and, while the sovereign as God’s “living and
breathing” image prevails in the realm of Caesar, he remains bound by God: God
remains the final judge of all, although a wronged people enjoys no ultimate right of
revolution and must await either the intervention of another prince or God’s
Sandel’s criticisms of Rawls are completely dispositive. Liberalism and the Limits of Justice, Cambridge, 1998; although not written in this vein, Shumer’s comments are strong rebuttal to the kind of theory offered by Rawls. Shumer, op. cit. 337Bodin 1.8 = McRae, op. cit., p. 84H; Franklin, op. cit., p. 1; Mairet, op. cit., p. 110. 338Maiestas est summa in cives ac subditos legibusque…soluta potestas. Quoted in McRae, op. cit., p. A75. This, of course, is the theme picked up by Schmitt: the sovereign is “he who decides on the exception.” C. Schmitt, op. cit., p. 5 339For example, Bodin writes, “…if we say that to have absolute power is not to be subject to any law at all, no prince of this world will be sovereign, since every earthly prince is subject to the laws of God and of nature and to various human laws that are common all peoples.” Bodin 1.8 = McRae, op. cit., p. 84I; Franklin, op. cit., p. 10; M. Shepard, “Sovereignty at the Crossroads: A Study of Bodin,” Political Science Quarterly 45.4 (Dec. 1930), pp. 580-603; J. Franklin, Jean Bodin and the Rise of Absolutist Theory, Cambridge, 2009 [1973], Ch. 5. 340Bodin identifies lawgiving as one of sovereignty’s marks: “…the first prerogative (marque) of a sovereign prince is to give law to all in general and each in particular….without the consent of any other, whether greater, equal, or below him.” Bodin 1.10 = McRae, op. cit., p. 159E; Franklin, Bodin, p. 56; Mairet, op. cit., p. 160.
128
punishment for vindication.341 This is obviously cold comfort to the sovereign’s
subjects. For no matter their enormity, a sovereign’s misdeeds never justify a
subject’s rebellion: “it is not the part of any subject individually, or all of them in
general, to make an attempt on the honor or the life of the monarch, either by way of
force or by way of law, even if he has committed all the misdeeds, impieties, and
cruelties that one could mention.”342 (emphasis added) This conclusion flows from
the idea that the sovereign is the source of law and shares that power with no one;
therefore, no person subject to that law can assume the superior position implicit in
the act of judging the sovereign. To allow such a circumstance would allow for
incomplete or shared sovereignty, which is in Bodin’s view no true sovereignty at all.
Being perpetual, sovereignty endures beyond any given sovereign’s life in a
way that parallels the distinction between the permanence of a magistrate’s office and
the temporary nature of a commissioner’s.343 Being indivisible, sovereignty cannot
be shared with anyone. Indeed, for Bodin, the very idea that powers can be shared is
341Constituent or fundamental law (leges imperii) also binds, but the people are never able to enforce a claim arising from its violation. Bodin 1.8 = McRae, op. cit., p. 95A; Franklin, Sovereignty, p. 18. “God, of whom [the prince] is the living & breathing image” Bodin 1.8 = McRae, op. cit., p. 109D; Franklin, Bodin, p. 39 On foreign intervention to remove a tyrant, Bodin writes, “…so is it a most beautiful and magnificent thing for a [viz. foreign] prince to take up arms in order to avenge an entire people unjustly oppressed by a tyrant’s cruelty….” 2.5 = McRae, op. cit., p. 220K; Franklin, Bodin, p. 113; Mairet, op. cit., p. 222 In fact, he most succinctly makes the point in the preface to the 1578 French edition, where he states, “…I denied that it was the function of a good man or of a good citizen to offer violence to his prince for any reason, however great a tyrant he might be; and contended that it was necessary to leave this punishment to God, and to other princes.” (emphasis added) McRae, op. cit., p. A72 342Bodin takes up the issue of tyrannicide in 2.5 = McRae, op. cit., p. 218Iff.; Franklin, Bodin, p. 110ff.; Mairet, op cit., p. 220ff. Quotation from 2.5 = McRae, op. cit., pp. 222G-H; Franklin, Bodin, p. 222; Mairet, op. cit., p. 224. Because he is not legitimate, a tyrant by usurpation may be resisted or killed, at least, in theory. 343Cf. Bodin 3.2 = McRae, op. cit., p. 280G; Mairet, op. cit., p. 267.
129
nonsensical, and he, therefore, rejects the classical idea of a mixed constitution.344
Thus, he argues, there always exists an authority of final instance, even in the case of
the Roman Republic, which from Polybius onward had been traditionally seen as an
example of a mixed constitution.345 For Bodin, division brings competition and chaos
in its wake.346 To have a division of sovereignty would imply, for example, the
executive at odds with the legislative in asserting itself as ultimate authority.
Therefore, true sovereignty can only possess a unitary nature. It is the translation of
God’s authority from the divine to the secular realm; only the sovereign can create
and give law, and set it aside as needed.347
Bodin considered this matter with sufficient thoroughness to explain exactly
what sovereign power meant for the duties of magistrates and government officials.
While his conclusions serve partly a riposte to protestant theories about magisterial
344Bodin 2.1 = McRae, op. cit., p. 194F-H; Franklin, Bodin, p. 104; Mairet, op. cit., pp. 193-4 345Polybius had argued in Book 6 of his Histories that the Roman constitution, being mixed, was a kind of inexplicable oddity that somehow disrupted, albeit not perpetually, the cycle of regimes (anacyclosis). For Bodin’s rejection of Polybius, see 2.1 = McRae, op. cit., p. 188Fff.; Franklin, Bodin, p.95ff.; Mairet, op. cit., p. 184ff. 346The prospect of chaos always looms in Bodin’s mind as is clear from the opening words of his preface to the first French edition. Mairet, op. cit., p. 45-6. The McRae edition has excerpted parts of this preface, which preserve by implication some of this concern. op. cit., p. A70 Mairet’s French edition is to be consulted here. Hobbes does not, pace Mansfield, stand apart for his opposition to “revolution as rebellion against the sovereign.” H. Mansfield, “Hobbes and the Science of Indirect Government,” American Political Science Review 65.1 (Mar. 1971), pp. 97-110, quotation at p. 98b 347Bodin argues, “Just as God, the great sovereign, cannot make a God equal to himself because he is infinite and by logical necessity (par demonstration necessaire) two infinites cannot exist, so we can say that the prince, whom we have taken as the image of God, cannot make a subject equal to himself without annihilation of his power.” 1.10 = McRae, op. cit., p. 155D-E; Franklin, Bodin, p. 50; Mairet, op. cit., p. 155
130
discretion, it was also an expression of his theory’s logical implications.348
According to Bodin, the power to make and repeal law is the first mark of
sovereignty; from it derives the power to appoint and remove officials, which itself is
sovereignty’s third sign.349 In any case, magistrates are effectively vicars of the
original source, their sovereign. Their duties and their relationship to the sovereign
are treated at length in Chapters 2-6 of Book 3. Legal scholar that he is, Bodin begins
his discussion, as he does with other topics, by explaining his terms. Officials are
divided into two categories: the ordinary that occupy standing office, and the
extraordinary that hold positions by appointment for particular periods and tasks. The
latter category, therefore, encompasses commissioners because they are created ad
hoc and hold an office that is limited in duration and scope. The former category
formally consists of the officers, who, in turn, are either magistrates or ministers.
Magistrates are distinct because they have the authority to command, which ministers
lack. From this it is clear that the official who presents potentially the greatest
challenge to the sovereign and his prerogatives, is the magistrate because he too
commands. Other officials possess inferior powers.350 It is worth noting here how
348This protestant tradition will be discussed further in the next chapter, but it is important to acknowledge it here in connection with Bodin’s own work. For background, see Franklin, Absolutism, Chs. 1 and 3; R. Kingdon, “Calvinism and Resistance Theory 1550-1580,” in J. Burns, ed., The Cambridge History of Political Thought 1450-1700, Cambridge, 2004 [1991], pp. 193-218; H. Strohl, “Le droit à la résistance d’après les conceptions protestants,” Revue d’histoire et de philosophie religieuses 10 (1930), pp. 126-44. 3491.10 = McRae, op. cit., p. 163E and 166G-8G; Franklin, Bodin, pp. 58 and 64-7; Mairet, op. cit., p.162-3 and 165-7 350Bodin’s definitions and discussion of these officials occur in 3.2-3 = McRae, op. cit., pp. 278A-309B; Mairet, op. cit., pp. 264-79. It is worth observing that Bodin is careful to distinguish between laws, which come from the sovereign and apply to all,
131
firm Bodin is in subordinating magistrates to the sovereign. Whereas Machiavelli
presents a political stage on which great men act for personal glory – such is the
world of his republic – or where a single prince must balance the elimination of some
challengers with the cooptation of others, Bodin posits an environment where the
very nature of sovereignty itself instantiates the subordination of all else.351 This is
not a matter of enticing and cajoling: the very nature of sovereignty demands the
execution of its will. Here, then, are the true precursors of the public servant as slave
to a political master, whether a people or a monarch.
The question remains, however, what do these officials do when faced with
orders that are manifestly unjust.352 Letters of justice leave to the magistrate a wide
and edicts, which come from magistrates and are comparatively limited in scope. 1.10 = McRae, op. cit., pp. 156I-7A; Franklin, Bodin, pp. 51-2; Mairet, op. cit., pp. 157-8. 351Ancient theory is far more consonant with Machiavelli on this point: the right kind of men in the right positions, motivated by pietas, use their discretion in the service of the nation (patria) or their friends, but always as an act of will. At Athens, to be sure, while there might be nothing wrong with dorodokia or helping out one’s friends, pure malfeasance could be dealt with by dokimasia. In the final analysis, however, how an official chose to behave in no way depended on an abstract notion that one was implicitly subordinate to pure authority. On dorodokia, see Conover, op.cit.; Plutarch, Precepts. Cf. the status of Prussian bureaucrats in the 18th century vis-à-vis their sovereign. W. Dorn, “The Prussian Bureaucracy in the Eighteenth Century,” Political Science Quarterly 46.3 (Sep. 1931), pp. 403-23 352It is important to acknowledge that for Bodin officials differ from citizens because they are public, not private, figures. “And first I call them publike persons, who are to attend upon the publike affaires: of whome there are two sorts, one which hath power to commaund, whome they call Magistrats: and another sort which hath no such commaunding power, but is onely to understand or to put in execution the commaundements of the others; and are yet all publike persons also.” Public affairs are synonymous with the mundane. 3.2 = McRae, op. cit., p. 278G-I; Mairet, op. cit., pp. 264-5 The private man, on the other hand, “cannot by any publicke right commaund over any other subject, although that he by privat and domesticall commaunds rule and governe his own familie.” 3.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 309D; Mairet, op. cit., p. 280: “le particulier n’a point de sujets sur lesquels il ait puissance publique de commander….” The question of magisterial obedience itself is taken up directly in 3.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 309Cff.; Mairet, op. cit., p. 280ff.
132
field for discretion to act in the king’s name, and, therefore, do not go to the heart of
the matter.353 By their nature, they call upon the magistrate himself to adjudicate
matters of equity on behalf of the sovereign:
…the prince leaveth unto the discretion of him to whom such his letters are addressed, to allow of them, or to refuse them, as his conscience, and the equitie of the cause shall require: which is not in letters of commaundement which leave nothing unto him to whom they are directed, except happily sometimes the examination of the fact onely….354
Letters of commandment, however, do not generally grant such discretion. They
leave to the magistrate only the examination of the facts, not the assessment of
justice. In any event, these letters, which do not constitute law, only allow the
magistrate latitude as prescribed by their content. In other words, the magistrates are
free to act in a manner circumscribed by the nature of the letters themselves, which
ultimately means that magistrates act at the sovereign’s behest. Moreover, whenever
confronted by unjust commands or commands detrimental to the republic, the
magistrate, having delayed execution of the command and advised the sovereign of
his scruple, one, twice, or even three times, must ultimately carry out his sovereign’s
order.355 Obviously, Weber’s notion of the duty-bound bureaucrat needs neither
Hegel nor Prussian bureaucracy as a frame of reference: the notion of bureaucratic
obedience was already there in Bodin as a logical corollary to the very idea of
monadic sovereignty. To be sure, he does seem to hedge when it comes to the matter
3533.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 312F; Mairet, op. cit., p. 285 3543.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 311A; Mairet, op. cit., p. 283 Of course, if such letters give the magistrate no discretion, his duty is to carry out his orders. 3.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 312H-I; Mairet, op. cit., p. 285 For an interesting perspective on the nature of equity, see comments in P. Kahn, Political Theology: Four New Chapters on the Concept of Sovereignty, New York, 2011, Ch. 2 3553.4 = Mcrae, op. cit., p. 313D
133
of implementing laws or commands contrary to the laws of God and nature, but this
reservation must be squared with the following, one might say, hopeful, comment:
But some will say, no prince to be found so evill advised, nor that it is to be supposed that he would commaund any thing contrarie unto the lawes of God and nature: and true it is; for why he worthily loseth the title and honour of a Prince, which departing from reason, and forgetting the dutie of a prince, breaketh the lawes of God and nature.356 (emphasis added)
But to drive the point home regarding the magistrate’s duty to his sovereign, Bodin
cites the example of Anastasius, who denied plaintiffs the right to cite imperial
rescripts or letters in support of their case. Even this apparently clear example of
injustice did not give the magistrates then, nor would it give magistrates in any other
case, the right to do anything more than advise the sovereign of the matter and carry
out the sovereign’s final decision.357 Thus, for example, “if the Maigstrate bee
commaunded by the Prince to abrogat an auntient law, being more upright and
profitable to give way unto another lesse iust, and less profitable for the
3563.4 = McRae, op. cit., pp. 312K-3A; Mairet, op. cit., p. 286: “Si on me dit qu’il ne se trouvera point de Prince si mal appris, et n’est pas à presume qu’il voulût commander chose contre la loi de Dieu et de nature, il est vrai: car [celui-là] perd le titre et l’honneur de Prince, qui fait contre le devoir de Prince. Nous avons montré par ci-devant que le Prince ne peut rien contre la loi de nature…” (emphasis added) To be sure, this conclusion calls for a suspension of disbelief, and Bodin certainly knew this. His discomfiture over this optimistic assertion is clear when he writes in the first preface, “He (sc., God) gives kingdoms and empires to the wisest and most virtuous princes, or to speak more accurately (pour mieux dire), to the least unjust and most proficient in managing affairs and governing peoples.” (emphasis added) McRae, op. cit., p. A70; Mairet, op. cit., p. 49 357McRae, op. cit., p. 314F: “Mine answere is, that that is to be understood, if in such the princes rescripts or letters no speciall clause be comprehended, derogating from the generall lawes: notwithstanding which derogation, yet the Magistrat ought neverthelesse to advertise the prince thereof, and to put him in mind of his dutie: who if he be not by the Magistrats reasons to be removed from his former opinion, but command the same the second time, the Magistrat is then to obey his commaund, although the thing so commaunded be not agreeing with the common profit, and contrarie unto the lawes.”
134
Commonweale; he may stay the execution of such a law or commaundement in
suspense, until he have shewed his reasons therefore unto the prince, which he is in
dutie bound to do, not once, but even twice or thrice….”358 The interesting case cited
by Bodin of Jean de La Vacquerie and his colleagues refusing to carry out a proposed
law, even on point of death, still emphasizes that the final decision rests with the
sovereign. The outcome, in which the sovereign yielded, is laudable, but the
discretion remained with the king.359 Obviously, then, once the law is promulgated or
the command issued, the time for counsel is over, and the magistrate’s duty is faithful
execution.360
3583.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 313D. Note the use of law and command together: Bodin does at times obscure by his inconsistent use of these words when discussing magistrates, although it is worth bearing in mind that command is characteristic of law: lex nihil aliud sit quam summae potestatis iussum sive sanctio. McRae, op. cit., p. A75 Whether the magistrate shall carry out his duties contrary to the law of nature is, frankly, difficult to discern. On the one hand, Bodin stipulates, “[i]f therefore the commaundement of the prince be not contrarie unto the lawes of God and nature….” On the other hand, he insists, “ for all that wee must not thereof conclude or gather, that if the prince doe in that case commaund anything contrarie unto his oath or the dutie of a Prince, that the Magistrat is therefore to refuse to obey his commaund.” McRae, op. cit., p. 313C 3593.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 315D-E It is interesting that Bodin emphasizes the social standing of the men involved in swaying the king’s judgment: “The king, beholding the gravitie, the port, and dignitie of these persons, and almost abashed with the so constant resolution of such his great magistrats, and withal doubting the power and the authoritie of the parliament, cause those his decrees so much misliked, to bee abrogated….” 360It is true that a magistrate may suspend execution of a command which he considers unjust on the grounds that time should be given for him to advise the sovereign of the matter. But, again, once advised, if the sovereign still wishes the law’s execution, the magistrate’s duty is obedience. As Bodin notes, “…when such constancie cannot heale the disease of the Commonweale, or faults of soveraigne princes and that the prince commaundeth the magistrats, to have his actions excused unto his subjects; it is much better for the magistrate to obey his commaund, and in so doing to cover and burie the memorie of a wicked fact already done, than in refusing so to do, to irritate the prince to the doing of worse.” 3.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 318I-K
135
Bodin goes further. Inasmuch as a body of magistrates will make up the
sovereign’s administration, he considers the possibility of resignation in the case of a
magistrate who feels, even against the opinions of his colleagues, that “an edict,
commission, or commaundment from his prince” is contrary to equity and, therefore,
unjust. Yet in such a case, though a magistrate might submit his resignation, if the
sovereign refuses, he cannot vacate his post.361 Bodin argues that the corporate
judgment of magistrates as to a law’s equity, if in accord with the sovereign’s wishes,
must itself be respected because to allow otherwise would “open a perilous gap to all
the subjects, by their example to refuse and reject the edicts and commaunds of their
prince” with chaos as the ultimate outcome.362 Indeed, tyrannicide suffers from a
similar problem. Thus, theoretical concessions to private judgment are, practically
speaking, best left merely theoretical because Bodin foresees chaos arising when
everyone simply follows his own judgment of the matter.363 More to the point, the
sovereign’s task is to command the unwilling, a risky task indeed, if any and all are
truly free to exercise personal judgment before obeying.364 Consideration of this
point shows the way to square apparent ambiguities in his treatment of magistrates
3613.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 316H-I 3623.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 316I 363Having carefully distinguished sovereign from tyrant, Bodin concludes, “…it is never permissible for a subject to attempt anything against a sovereign prince, no matter how wicked and cruel a tyrant he may be. It is certainly permissible not to obey him in anything that is against the law of God or nature…. For oh, how many tyrants there would be if it were lawful to kill! He who taxes too heavily would be a tyrant, as the vulgar understand it…. How then should good princes be secure in their lives?” 2.5 = McRae, op. cit., p. 225D-E (the Knolles text differs differs significantly in wording, though not in sense); Franklin, Bodin, p. 120; Mairet, op. cit., p. 229 364“…the main power of sovereign majesty and absolute power consists of giving law to subjects in general without their consent.” (emphasis added) 1.8 = McRae, op. cit., p. 98H; Franklin, Bodin, p. 23
136
who find a law unjust. In theory, they may very well have the option of withdrawal
or, perhaps, inaction, if a command violates God’s law, although Bodin virtually
claimed this an impossibility, but in practice this is actually inadvisable and ought to
be avoided.365 In fine, he concludes, magistrates ought to do what they are told.
Thus, for example, Bodin more or less forecloses the practical exercise of magisterial
resistance, even when done on the grounds of religious conscience:
this is especially to be considered, that we pretend not the vaine show of religion, or rather of superstition, against our princes commaunds, and so upon a conscience evill grounded open a way unto rebellion: for when the magistrate maketh conscience, and a matter of religion, about the executing of his princes commaunds, he seemeth himself (and giveth occasion unto others also) to suspect evill both of the religion and conscience of his prince. Wherefore he ought to be well assured of the true knowledge of the eternall God, and of the true worship and service unto him due: which consisteth not in vaine and counterfeit shows of religion or conscience.366
The possibility for error in conscience is sufficient to suggest that the best course in
practice is just to obey. 367 Moreover, refraining from resistance is also preferred lest
one provide examples for others to imitate, especially as their own judgment too
might be in error: “…it is much more also to be feared, least that the other
magistrates, by the example of one or two, and after them other privat men (le peuple)
also, should presume to contemne (désobéir) the princes commaund, to the great
endangering and ruine of the Commonweale.”368 The exceptions and allowances
made by Bodin appear, then, merely to dissolve as the dangers of serving as a bad
365“Nous avons montré par ci-devant que le Prince ne peut rien contre la loi de nature….” (emphasis added) Mairet, op. cit., p. 286 (3.4) The Knolles text softens or obscures this claim. McRae, op. cit., p. 313A 3663.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 325B; Mairet, op. cit., pp. 291-2 3673.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 315A: “…the equitie and reason which we call naturall, is not alwaies so cleere and manifest….” 3683.4 = McRae, op. cit., p. 323B; Mairet, op. cit., p. 289
137
example, executing an error in judgment, or even diminishing the very grandeur of
sovereignty all tend in the end towards chaos, which is to be avoided at all costs.
Thus, Bodin’s idea of sovereignty serves as the foundation, acknowledged or not, for
the tradition of bureaucratic duty – a duty to obey, even after remonstrance.
Obviously, sovereignty, being the key concept in understanding the
bureaucratic tradition, one could trace its development by various paths.369 It will
suffice here to focus on that the theoretical implications of sovereignty that were
taken up by Rousseau and the French revolutionaries.370 If one were only to argue for
this on the grounds that the French administration was particularly influential, that
would suffice.371 But what is particularly intriguing here is the way in which
sovereignty, once conceived as popular will, called for an even stronger form of
absolutism than conceived by Bodin. In any case, Bodin’s arguments about
sovereignty and the duties of magistrates truly lay out all the contours that apply in
later years. The French philosophes and revolutionnaires merely draw out to an
369It is possible to examine the development of bureaucracy through cameralism and beyond in Prussia. Michalski, op. cit. Or by focusing purely on political theory, one could reach Rousseau via Hobbes and Montesquieu. Or one could take Locke as a point of reference by way of Filmore. It is not so much that one approach or avenue is superior to any other, but that the development of sovereignty within the French tradition is particularly striking and revealing, especially in light of its influence on the development of scientific administration. Mannoni and Sardi, op. cit., pp. 240-1 Cf. Tilly, op. cit., pp. 107-14 and the discussion of French administrative science in T. Porter, Trust in Numbers, Princeton, 1996 Friedrich observes that the development of cameralism itself was heavily influenced by Montesquieu. C. Friedrich, “The Continental Tradition of Training Administrators in Law and Jurisprudence,” The Journal of Modern History 11.2 (Jun. 1939), pp. 129-48 370On the basis of good, common sense, of all things, Talmon rejects the notion that the philosophes did not have an impact on the revolutionary leaders. J. Talmon, The Origins of Totalitarian Democracy, New York, 1970, pp. 69-70. 371Mannori and Sordi, op. cit., pp. 234-42
138
extreme the basic principles previously articulated. The positions of Rousseau and
Saint-Just illustrate this extreme position.
In his Social Contract, Rousseau works through the theoretical implications of
the people as sovereign, as manifested through the general will.372 For Rousseau, as
for Bodin, the sovereign is the source and guarantor of law, capable of abrogating
(effreindre) it as needed.373 But Rousseau goes further. Whereas for Bodin, the
sovereign is constrained by divine and fundamental law (leges imperii), even, as was
pointed out, if only in theory, Rousseau’s sovereign is not so bound. He is truly
legibus solutus. Indeed, “…there is not, nor can there be, any kind of fundamental
law (loi fundamentale) binding on the body of the people, not even the social
contract.”374 (emphasis added) The implication, as Derathé points out in his
comment on this passage, is precisely this: “…il n’y a point de limites
372A. Ritter and J. Bonadellia, edd., Rousseau’s Political Writings, New York, 1988; Derathé, R., et al., edd., Jean-Jacques Rousseau: Oeuvres Complètes, Pléiade, Paris, 1966, v. 3; Talmon, op. cit., pp. 40-9 Rousseau is in practice no democrat as Constant observes: “…son (sc., Rousseau’s) erreur a fait de son Contrat Social, si souvent invoqué en faveur de la liberté, le plus terrible auxiliaire de tous les genres de despotisme.” Principes de Politique in A. Roulin, A., ed., Benjamin Constant: Oeuvres, Pléiade, Paris, 1957, p. 1071 = B. Fontana, Constant: Political Writings, Cambridge, CTHPT, 2006 [1988], p. 177. 373Social Contract 1.7 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 94; Derathé, op. cit., p. 362 Hobbes is more often seen as paving the way for Rousseau, but it is difficult too not to see Bodin, whom Rousseau cites in his work, in the background of his discussions about sovereignty and its implications. His desire to sublimate the “particular will” evokes the concern of Hobbes with private conscience. See Mansfield, Hobbes, fn. 346, supra. For Rousseau’s engagement with Machiavelli, see L. McKenzie, “Rousseau’s Debate with Machiavelli in the Social Contract,” Journal of the History of Ideas 43.2 (Apr./Jun. 1982), pp. 209-28 374Social Contract, ibid., and 3.18 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 148; Derathé, op. cit., p. 436: “…there is no fundamental law in the state that cannot be repealed.” Of course, the social contract itself is by its very nature fundamental law, and the people may dissolve that at will. In his Septième lettre, Rousseau asserted: “Or il est de l’essence de la Puissance Souveraine de ne pouvoir être limitée: elle peut tout ou elle n’est rien.” Lettres écrites de la montagne, Derathé, op. cit., p. 826
139
constitutionelles à la souveraineté et…le souverain étant à tout instant maître de
changer ses volontés ou ses lois, il n’y a point de lois fondmaentales qu’il soit tenu de
maintenir en vigueur, pas même la forme du Gouvernement.”375 This notion brings
with it the further idea that the totalizing nature of the sovereign as the expression of a
people’s general will, is incapable itself of harming the people as a corporate body.376
Being composed of all individuals, taken together as a monad or unity, the sovereign
has no interest contrary to that unity and thus cannot even wish to harm it although it
may itself be suppressed by a surfeit of particular wills.377 The general interest and
the sovereign, then, are one and the same, and individuals, with their particular
interests, must obey, whether willingly or under compulsion (contrait par tout le
corps).378 Therefore, Rousseau reasons, the sovereign need not even provide any
guarantee to those subject to it, that is, to the individual members who compose the
community.379 Where Bodin, argued, albeit optimistically, that God himself provided
sovereigns that would not seek to harm their communities, Rousseau suggests that the
sovereign, as a manifestation of the community’s will itself, perforce cannot harm the
375Derathé, op. cit., p. 1447 (his fn. 5) Derathé cites several parallel passages that only reinforce Rousseau’s idea. 376There is a potentially interesting parallel between this notion of the corporate nation state unanimity and the notion of ijma’ in Muslim thought. This idea of consensus derives from a hadith according to which Muhammad had stated that the community (umma) would never reach consensus on a matter of error (dhalala). s.v., idjma’ in H. Gibb and J. Kramers, edd., Concise Encyclopedia of Islam, Leiden, 1995 [1953], pp. 157a-8b 377Social Contract 4.1 = Ritter, op. cit., pp. 148-50; Derathé, op. cit., pp. 437-9 378Social Contract, ibid. = Ritter, op. cit., p.95; Derathé, op. cit., p. 364 379Social Contract, ibid. = Ritter, op. cit., p.94; Derathé, op. cit., p. 363 The sovereign cannot have any interest contrary to the community’s (n’a peut avoir d’intérêt contraire au leur)
140
members of that community.380 Rousseau’s sovereign, then, appears much stronger,
perhaps even “radical,” when compared to the one depicted by his predecessor.381
Rousseau expands on the nature of sovereignty at greater length in Book 2 of
the Social Contract, and in Book 3 he takes up the relationship between the sovereign
and its agent, defined as government. Some aspects of this sovereign are more or less
traditional: for example, inalienability (2.1) and indivisibility (2.2). But sovereignty’s
status as an infallible hypostasis of the community’s general will, over and against
particular wills, takes the tradition a step further. Rousseau asserts, for example, “that
the general will is always in the right and always tends toward the public utility.”382
To some extent, the implicit logic is that the general will is always right (droite)
because it is the source of law (droit), and laws themselves are never particular. They
are general in application.383 Therefore, the general will produces by way of
legislation general expressions of right, which ipso facto are law.384 In connection
380Cf. the critique of the line of reasoning that says “the prince is what he should be.” Social Contract 3.6 = Ritter, op. cit., pp. 131-2; Derathé, op. cit., pp. 412-3 381Elshtain rightly observes, “…Rouseau winds up with a unitary, monistic version of sovereignty that levels everything that stands in its way – particular wills, particular faiths, anything that might prove an irritant in the image of the indissolubility and indivisibility of sovereignty.” op. cit., p. 131 She had rightly characterized Rousseau’s version of sovereignty as “radical.” p. 120 382Social Contract 2.3 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 100; Derathé, op. cit., p. 371 383Social Contract 2.6 = Ritter, op. cit., pp. 105-7; Derathé, op. cit., pp. 378-80; 3.1 = Ritter, op cit., p. 118; Derathé, op. cit., p. 395-6; 3.12 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 140; Derathé, op. cit., p. 424 This link between the general will and law, which is general in specification because it applies to all, echoes Bodin’s distinction between law and edict. It is worth observing too that Rousseau considers government itself a commissary entity, a point which emphasizes its temporary nature as an agent with delegated authority (“…it [sc., Government] is only the minister.”). Social Contract 3.1 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 119; Derathé, op. cit., p. 396: “[c]e n’est absolument qu’une commission….” Cf. fn. 350, supra. 384The general will “must come from all to be applied to all.” Social Contract 2.4 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 102; Derathé, op. cit., p. 373; for Rousseau’s definition of law, see
141
with this, it is worth recalling Rousseau’s assertion in the Discourse on Political
Economy that the popular will, which is only a synonym for the general will, is “the
voice of God.” 385 To be sure, Rousseau concedes, individuals, motivated by their
particular interests, can by their acts interfere with the expression of the general will,
but this concession points to the larger problem within the political community: the
danger of particular wills, or, in modern terms, private interests.386 And this applies
to members of the government as well, once they pursue their particular wills.387
After all, individuals, who may not themselves see the good or may be deceived,
determine their actions and choose to act in response to their immediate concerns:
they may lack the civic virtue or “common interest” necessary to the expression of the
Social Contract 2.6 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 106; Derathé, op. cit., p. 379: “Alors la matière sur laquelle on statue est générale comme la volonté qui statue. C’est cet acte que j’appelle une loi.” (emphasis added) Law is by definition the general will’s expression: “…laws are the only authentic acts of the general will….” Social Contract 3.12 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 140; Derathé, op. cit., p. 425 385See Rousseau’s discussion of general and particular wills in his Discourse on Political Economy. Ritter, op. cit., pp. 61-2; Derathé, op. cit., pp. 244-6 The actual divine will, Rousseau argues, is simply beyond the ken of mankind; otherwise there would be no need for government or law. Social Contract 2.6 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 105; Derathé, op. cit., p. 378 In light of this observation, Rousseau’s comment on nature of the lawgiver himself (“It would take gods to give laws to men.”) raises interesting questions. Social Contract 2.7 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 108; Derathé, op. cit., p, 381 (where Dieux is capitalized; note the variation quoted in Derathé’s note [p. 1462, n. 3] “il faudroit un Dieu, etc.”) 386Cf. Arendt, op. cit., p. 78 It is worth noting that Rousseau highlights the dangers that moral habits pose to the state: “Now, the less the particular wills relate to the general will, that is, the less moral habits (moeurs) relate to laws, the more the repressive force must be increased.” Social Contract 3.1 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 120; Derathé, op. cit., p. 397 Rousseau contrasts moeurs because they are internal with laws, which are external. Fragments 6, Derathé, op. cit., p. 555 387Social Contract 3.10 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 137ff; Derathé, op. cit., p. 421ff.
142
infallible general will.388 The general will, as an expression of the sovereign, then, is
more completely unbound in Rousseau’s configuration than Bodin’s.
For Rousseau, government is the sovereign’s agent. To act, the sovereign
depends on government in the sense that every action consists of two parts,
conception and execution.389 Without the power to act, the desire to act is
incomplete, and without the desire to act, the capacity to act is merely potential.
Naturally, this analysis applies to individual members of a community just as it
applies to corporate bodies within the community. Thus, particular will. Against this
stands the will of the entire polity come together as a state, and the totality of its
singular will is, as already explained, the general will. The general will, therefore,
finds its institutional expression in the government as executive.390 This may take the
form of monarchy, aristocracy, democracy, or mixed government. The particular
institutional arrangements, however, are not as important to the discussion as the
relationship they all must have to the sovereign. Even with a monarch, it is
understood that he will have to operate via agents or magistrates who constitute the
388“Nothing is more dangerous than the influence of private interests in public affairs....,” warns Rousseau. Social Contract 3.4 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 125; Derathé, op. cit., p. 404 On political manipulation, see Discourse on Political Economy. Ritter, op. cit., pp. 62-3; Derathé, op. cit., pp. 246-7 Cf. Social Contract 2.4 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 103; Derathé, op. cit., p. 374 Regarding the necessity of virtue for all regimes, see Social Contract 3.4 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 126; Derathé, op. cit., p. 405; 4.1 = Ritter, op. cit., pp. 148-50; Derathé, op. cit., pp. 437-9 In Fragments Politiques, Rousseau states, “L’erreur de la plupart des moralistes fut toujours de prendre l’homme pour un être essentiellement raisonnable.” Fragments 16.1 (Des Moeurs), Derathé, op. cit., p. 554 389Social Contract 3.1 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 118; Derathé, op. cit., p. 395 390“J’appelle donc Gouvernement ou supreme administration l’exercise légitime de la puissance exécutive, et Prince ou magistrat l’homme ou le corps chargé de cette administration.” (emphasis in original) Social Contract 3.1 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 119; Derathé, op. cit., p. 396
143
administration: thus the particular institutional arrangement need not occupy the
discussion. Government is seen as mediator between the sovereign as general will
and the political community made up of citizens. Put differently, “[its]most pressing
concern, as well as [its] essential duty, is, therefore, to oversee the observance of the
laws of which [it] is the minister and upon which all his authority is founded.”391
Needless to say, as a commissary, government does not issue laws. Its commands are
particular in nature, not general as laws are, and, therefore, they are edicts.392 To
carry out its duties on behalf of the sovereign, it will find instantiation in the form of
officials. Enter magistrates.
Obviously, magistrates are agents of the sovereign. Their duties flow from
that relationship. Yet they also are citizens and remain members of the political
community. Furthermore, as Rousseau prescribes, they also form, as they do to some
extent in Bodin, a corporate body. What this means is that the magistrate himself
possesses and may respond to three wills: as a citizen, general will (volonté generale),
as a private individual, particular will (volunté particulière), as an official, corporate
will (volunté de corps). As Rousseau explains,
We can distinguish in the person of the magistrate three essentially different wills. First, there is private will of the individual, which tends only towards his particular advantage; secondly, there is the common will of the magistrates, which relates solely to the
391Political Economy, Ritter, op. cit, p. 64; Derathé, op. cit. p. 249 Rousseau actually speaks of “the leader (chef)” in this context, but, as he explains in the Social Contract, the prince and the government are functionally interchangeable. Thus, the principle articulated here with regard to “the leader” applies to whatever form the government takes as the sovereign’s executive. 392Ryan appears not to be sufficiently attentive to this important distinction in Rousseau. Otherwise, he ought to have said that the government would operate by means of “…something closer to edicts….” op. cit., v. 2, p. 566 In point of fact, by definition, the government cannot produce law, only edicts.
144
advantage of the prince, and which may be called the corporate will since it is general in relation to the government and particular in relation to the state of which the government forms a part; thirdly, there is the will of the people or the sovereign will, which is general both in relation to the state considered as the whole and to the government considered as part of the whole.393
Naturally, a magistrate’s particular will ought always to be sublimated in service of
the general or corporate wills. Otherwise, there is the risk that each may usurp
sovereignty within his own domain.394 Yet, this is precisely the problem: the
individual magistrate, in fact, runs the risk of being most responsive to his particular
interest, not the general will, which in Rousseau’s gradation of wills is weakest.395
This, in fact, is the very substance of the problem described among modern writers as
the problem of “democratic control.”396 In other words, Rousseau is conscious that
the link between the expression of the general will by the sovereign and the execution
of that will by the individuals so charged is always at risk of being broken because of
private interests.397 But he goes further. By introducing the notion of corporate will,
393Social Contract 3.2 = Ritter, op. cit., pp. 122; Derathé, op. cit., pp. 400-1 394Social Contract 3.5 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 128; Derathé, op. cit., p. 407 Rousseau actually speaks here of the individual leaders (chefs), but the principle surely applies to those to whom the sovereign delegates the authority to act. Ritter’s translation, “…can each (sc., leaders) act as sovereign in his own region…” misses the force of the French: “…(les chefs) puissent trancher du Souverain chacun dans son department….” (emphasis added) Cf. Social Contract 3.10 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 139; Derathé, op. cit., p. 423: “…autant de Princes que de Magistrats….” 395Social Contract 3.2= Ritter, op. cit., pp. 123; Derathé, op. cit., pp. 401 396As Rousseau states, “…the act which institutes the government is not a contract but a law, [that] the trustees of executive power are not the masters of the people but its officials (officiers), [that] it can establish and discharge them whenever it please, [that] for them there is no question of contracting but only of obeying….” Social Contract 3.18 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 147; Derathé, op. cit., p. 434 Rousseau is, of course, speaking here of fundamental law or leges imperii. 397Once magistrates begin to function independently in the service of their private interests, the state is on the decline. Social Contract 3.10 = Ritter, op. cit., pp. 138-9; Derathé, op. cit., p. 423. Cf. fn. 394, supra.
145
he acknowledges an ambiguous institutional concern, because, after all, even a
corporate body might substitute its interests for the sovereign’s.398 Corporate will is
that particular set of interests and intention to act that officialdom inevitably
possesses and must be subordinate to the general will. Obviously, as the government
machinery expands, its “corporate will” tends to match more closely the general will.
Yet, obviously concerned that the state should actually accomplish something, he
asserts that a large state is best ruled by a smaller government. The implication that
the corporate will under such circumstances might actually be less commeasurable
with general will is clear inasmuch as the magisterial body represents a smaller
sample of the political community as a whole.399 In some sense, however, corporate
will may be a compromise position: better than particular will, which can run
strongest, but worse than general will, which tends to be weak.400
398 Cf. Septième lettre, Lettres écrites de la montagne, Derathé, op. cit., p. 815 399Social Contract, ibid. = Ritter, op. cit., pp. 122-4; Derathé, op. cit., pp. 400-2 Rousseau refers to government as a “machine” in 3.6. Ritter, op. cit., p. 128; Derathé, op. cit., p. 408 This popular trope (i.e., Rousseau is not the only one to use it) obviously sees the government as a clock or watch, as the reference to mainspring (ressort) makes clear: it is no general machine. This metaphor is particularly significant, for, just as a watch’s mainspring animates it and eventually wears out, so the mainspring of a government may also weaken and eventually lose its motive force. Social Contract 3.10 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 138; Derathé, op. cit., p.422 It is worth noting that the late 18th century was a period when several technological innovations were introduced to horlogerie by Abraham Breguet, who survived the revolution and eventually counted Napoleon among his customers as he had Marie Antoinette. The introduction of the metaphor of government as clock (as opposed, or in addition to the older one of state as a ship) merits a separate study because it obviously reflects a shift in technology. 400 One might even see in corporate will a precursor to the notion of professionalism that became a key feature of later, idealized concepts of bureaucracy.
146
Moreover, in point of fact, the corporate will even has a salubrious capacity
with regard to the state.401 To be sure, anything that competes with the general will
puts the entire community at risk. But in the scheme of things, it is particular wills
and factions above all else that threaten the general will. Here, the corporate will
might be of some service. In a manner evocative of Machiavelli’s republic, where
competition among great men’s ambitions invigorates the state, Rousseau suggests
that magistrates, as a corporate body, can balance or limit the prince’s power.402 Not
that Rousseau elucidates the mechanics of this balancing act, but he does suggest that
it can be a positive force. Corporate will, then, is not all bad, but it does pose a
problem, just as any grouping inferior to the general will represents a potential threat
to the state.403 Doubtless, this is why, when addressing the state’s fundamental laws,
401 Curiously, Cobban, who strives throughout his book to rescue Rousseau from the charge of having theorized a totalitarian state, does not take up the issue of corporate will in relation to the magistrates. A. Cobban, Rousseau and the Modern State, Hamden, 1964, pp. 46-8 402Prince and government are sometimes the same, sometimes distinct in the Social Contract. Cf. fn. 391, supra. Speaking of limited government, Rousseau says that the lack of balance between legislative and executive can “be prevented by establishing magistrates, who, leaving the government undivided, serve only to balance the two powers and to maintain their respective rights. In that case, the government is not mixed; it is limited.” Social Contract 3.7 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 132; Derathé, op. cit., p. 414 Cf. Social Contract 3.10 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 137; Derathé, op. cit., p. 421, where Rousseau mentions the absence of a “corporate will” to resist the prince. Interestingly, Rousseau’s conception of the magisterial function in the Polish constitution expresses this in terms that evoke Machiavelli’s republican notions: “Je voudrois que toutes les fonctions publiques menassent ainsi de l’une à l’autre; afin que nul ne s’arrangeant pour rester dans la sienne, ne s’en fit un métier lucrative et ne se mit au dessus du jugement des hommes.” Considérations sur le gouvernement de Pologne et sur sa réformation projettée, Derathé, op. cit., pp. 1001-2 403This corporate will is, of course, one of the vexing problems of bureaucracy, and animates modern concerns about the need for democratic control. On the other hand, although not specifically conceived as corporate in nature, protestant theories of magisterial discretion anticipates Rousseau’s point because in that tradition, magistrates themselves may counter the sovereign in the interest of the community.
147
Rousseau emphasizes officialdom’s necessary subordination to the sovereign.404 In
other words, bureaucracy does not exist to act in its own interests. Rather, it, the
government, exists to serve the sovereign, and that is precisely what Rousseau says:
“…[for] the trustees of executive power…there is no question of contracting but only
of obeying.”405
Rousseau’s Social Contract was only a theoretical work; it was the burden of
revolutionaries to labor under its influence.406 Obviously, the French revolution is
itself too large a subject to undertake here, but it is worth remembering it as a period
that saw a radical change in French administration. The rise alone of a huge national
army amid the circumstance of wars, internal and external, called for growth in the
number of officials, but, more significantly, the overall revolutionary program called
for an entirely new configuration of government on a scale never before seen in
France.407 Cobb noted that perhaps as many as 150,000 new bureaucrats were
See, for example, J. Franklin, ed., Constitutionalism and Resistance in the Sixteenth Century: Three Treatises by Hotman, Beza, & Mornay, New York, 1969. This issue will be discussed in the following chapter. 404Social Contract 3.18 = Ritter, op. cit., p. 147; Derathé, op. cit., p. 434 405Social Contract, ibid. 406In A. Cobban’s words, “practical circumstances dictated theory.” A History of Modern France, Harmondsworth, 1984 [1957], v. 1, p. 235 In his book on Rousseau, he disappoints when it comes to discussing the Jacobins as interpreters of Rousseau’s theory. Rousseau, passim, but esp., pp. 20-2. Goyard-Fabre notes, “Sans doute faut-il distinguer, dans la Révolution française, le mouvement des idées et l’application qui en est faite puisque ‘l’essence de la souveraineté’ dont parle Rousseau est en quelque sorte contredite par la politique jacobine de Salut Publique.” S. Goyard-Fabre, “L’idée de souveraineté du peuple et le ‘libéralisme pur’ de Benjamin Constant,” Revue de Métaphysique et de Morale 81.3 (Jul./Sep. 1976), pp. 289-327, quotation at p. 299. 407Tilly identifies this as the transformation from indirect to direct rule. For his discussion, see, op. cit., pp. 107-14. Cf. the fascinating arguments about bureaucratization in Qin China: E. Kiser and Y. Cai “War and Bureaucratization in Qin China: Exploring an Anomalous Case,” American Sociological Review 68.4
148
appointed during the period of the terror, and Church suggested that the bureaucracy
expanded four times over.408 All this growth in a period spanning just a few years! It
is no surprise, then, that the issue of control by the central authority over burgeoning
officialdom would figure in the thinking of those tasked with acting on the people’s
behalf.409 Among the Jacobins, while Robespierre stands out, not least for his
instrumental role in the terror, it was his acolyte, Saint-Just, whose theoretical efforts
– improvements to Rousseau, as he perhaps saw them – were systematic and
thorough-going.410
(Aug. 2003), pp. 511-39 One problem with their analysis relates to the idea of “militarization,” which depends on a relatively uncritical acceptance of numbers of soldiers, casualties, and the like found in the Chinese sources with historical estimates for other civilizations that are the product of modern, critical analysis. This surely distorts, and one is tempted to recall the energy Delbrück, for example, devoted to undermining any faith in the Classical record. See H. Delbrück, Warfare in Antiquity, Lincoln, 1990 [1920], pp. 33-52. In the area of the French treasury, which one might consider a proxy for the growth of centralization during the Revolution, see J. Bosher, French Finances 1770-1795: from Business to Bureaucracy, Cambridge, 2008 [1970] 408See the comments of R. Cobb and C. Church in “Social Mobility,” Past & Present 32 (Dec. 1965), pp. 8-9 For the American experience, the table provided by Choung reveals, not surprisingly, the impetus war has provided to the growth of bureaucracy here.: “…the growth appears to be primarily a function of wars….” W. Choung, Control Mechanisms over Bureaucratic Power Expansion and a Tentative Model for the Comparative Study of Bureaucracy, Temple University, dissertation, 1981, p. 19 (Table 1.2) and p. 20 (quotation) 409Cf. Tocqueville’s observation that a democratic people initially concentrates power in its prince before eventually entrusting administrative power to “des mandataires secondaires. Telle paraît être la marche naturelle instinctive et pour ainsi dire forcé que suivent les sociétés qui…sont entrainées vers la démocratie.” F. Mélonio, ed., Alexis de Tocqueville: l’ancien régime et la révolution, Paris, 1988, p. 73 410Saint-Just, Robespierre’s “faithful disciple”: Talmon, op. cit., p. 98; Saint-Just perhaps overestimating his corrections to Rousseau: Talmon, op. cit., p. 84; A. Kupiec and M. Abensour, edd.,Saint-Just: Oeuvres Complètes, Paris, 2004 Terror was, according to Robespierre, a tool necessary to government during turbulent times: “Si le ressort du gouvernement populaire, dans la paix, est la vertu, le ressort du gouvernement populaire en révolution, est à la fois la vertu et la terreur….” Le 18
149
In every respect, Saint-Just’s thought is animated by a deep mistrust of
particular will (volonté particulière). Individuals left to their own devices, particularly
under conditions of inequality, look only to their own concerns. Thus the various
pernicious manifestations: ambition (l’ambition), arrogance (l’orgueil), jealousy (la
jalousie), all of which undermine the general will’s expression.411 In some ways, of
course, this echoes Rousseau’s concerns, but Saint-Just’s words come with a sense of
urgency appropriate to a man besieged by traitors, false friends, and enemies
everywhere, as he surely felt himself to be.412 The goal, then, was to recreate an
apolitical state of nature where men would (one senses that Saint-Just might say,
“must”) behave independently and as equals.413 This is a paradise that can only come
about by addressing the problem of physical want and creating an institutional
framework utterly subordinate to law as an expression of general will, which, it is
worth stressing, is only the general will, if it is also governed by reason.414 Indeed, it is
Pluviôse an II sure les principes de morale politique in R. Garaudy, ed., Les orateurs de la révolution française, Paris, 1939, pp. 71-7, quotation from p. 75. 411See Discours du 9 Thermidor, for example, in Kupiec, op. cit., p. 776: “Si tout le monde avait été modest, et n’avait point été jaloux qu’on parlât plus d’un autre que de soi, nous serions fort paisibles…L’orgueil enfante les factions.” 412See, for example, his final speech, Discours du 9 thermidor an II. Kupiec, op. cit., pp. 769-85. 413Saint-Just apparently views politics as nothing but the environment of factional activity: “Si vous voulez que les factions s’éteignent, et que personne n’entreprenne de s’élever sur les débris de la liberté publique par les lieux communs de Machiavel, rendez la politique impuissante en réduisant tout à la règle froide de la justice.” (emphasis added) Discours du 9 thermidor in Kupiec, op. cit., p. 777 For him, dependence, whatever its form, represented inequality. Institutions républicaines in Kupiec, op. cit., p. 1090. Rawls in his Theory of Justice seems equally driven by a desire to eliminate politics: the veil of ignorance and reason both conspire to remove the contentious essence of politics from the field of view. 414This is a significant qualification as it means that the general will is not merely a tally of votes (Rousseau’s will of all). The people, who are “stupid,” must have reason. See L’esprit de la révolution in Kupiec, op. cit., p. 426 (stupidité publique);
150
the creation of institutions above all else that will serve to structure a world where man
can act according to his nature.415 It is a world, perhaps, that lies ahead, not in the past,
because the actual state of nature is not recoverable – the real state of nature had no
politics, after all.416 On this point, the comments of Saint-Just in the Discours du 9
Thermidor bear quoting. After suggesting that politics must be eliminated in order to
address the problem of factions, he goes on to describe why what is needed is a system
of law, not men:
Laws have no passion to divide them and make them conceal. Laws are severe, and men are not always so: an impenetrable masque can cover them for long periods. If laws protect innocence, the outsider (l’étranger) cannot corrupt them; but if innocence is the toy of vile intrigues, there is no longer a guarantee inside the city. One must flee to the desert to find there his independence and his friends among the wild animals. One must abandon a world where one no longer has the energy for crime or virtue and where there is nothing left but the bogeyman (épouvante) and indifference (mépris).417
p. 468 (juste et raisonnable) Cf. the comment of Constant: “…while [Saint-Just] seemed to suppose the nation capable of the most painful sacrifices, he acknowledged her, by his style, incapable of paying attention.” Liberty of the Ancients Compared with that of the Moderns, fn. a., in Fontana, op. cit., p. 320. 415“Les institutions sont la garantie du gouvernement d’un peuple libre contre la corruption des moeurs et la garantie du peuple et du citoyens contre la corruption du gouvernement.” Institutions républicaines in Kupiec, op. cit., p. 1089 416Cf. A. Pons, ed., Condorcet: Esquisse d’un tableau historique des progrès de l’esprit humain, Paris, 1988, p. 81: “Sans doute, ces progrès pourront suivre une marche plus ou moins rapide, mais jamais elle ne sera retrograde….” 417Kupiec, op. cit., p. 778 Cf. in his Institutions républicaines, Saint-Just describes the rationale of institutions in terms that evoke the harmony of mankind in the prepolitical state of nature. Kupiec, op. cit., p. 1089; cf. the comparison between law and arbitrary judgment. L’esprit de la révolution, Kupiec, op. cit., p. 446 The comments of Constant regarding this faith in law are particularly biting: “Ce sont des fous qui, s’ils gouvernaient, recommenceraient Robespierre, avec les meilleures intentions du monde.” (emphasis added) Journal, 27 Mai (7 Prairial) in Roulin, op. cit., p. 277
151
Here Saint-Just seems to encapsulate his antipathy towards the world of particular
wills as manifested in politics; here, he seems to say that one must either abandon
mankind altogether, effectively reverting to a state of nature, or recreate those
conditions via law’s austere implacability.418 For him, law itself can expunge
destructive amour propre, creating a kind of world where men are all independent,
like wild animals, but equal and free of jealousy: a recapitulation of Genesis or the
Epic of Gilgamesh where Adam or Enkidu dwelt peacefully among the beasts.
Of course, it is not merely a matter of institutions and law. Reason must
animate the system, or rather, the machine. To be sure, the metaphor of the machine
or clock is a favorite during the 18th century.419 Saint-Just, therefore, is not
particularly unique in evoking the imagery (nor was Robespierre himself);
nevertheless, it is worth pausing to consider the implications of this metaphor for a
man concerned, as he was, with eliminating particular wills and ensuring the
government function according to laws articulated via institutions.420 The watch –
and this is obviously what underlies a lot of the imagery given the constant reference
418The unacknowledged contradiction in this rests in the fact that man in the state nature no longer is man precisely because reason, which distinguishes men from animals, no longer has any place. Reason, which distinguishes good from bad, ceases to function in a state where everything is good. 419See Bosher’s comments. op. cit., pp. 133-5. Cf. fn. 399, supra. L. Winner, although he generally focuses on the 19th century and later, is extremely insightful and eloquent on the relationship between technology and politics, which, of course, is reflected in the language used to describe both. Autonomous Technology: Technics-out-of-Control as a Theme in Political Thought, Cambridge, 1978 420It is worth noting that Robespierre in speech of 18 Pluviôse speaks of virtue as the “ressort essential qui le (sc., democratic government) soutient et qui le fait mouvoir.” A revolutionary government has for its mainspring virtue and terror. See Garaudy, op. cit., pp. 74-5
152
to ressort or mainspring – is regular and predictable in its beat.421 Its gears and
wheels are located in their proper place, and move in concert with a harmonious
regularity that marks time, progress, and regularity. Once crafted by the watchmaker,
or lawgiver, all of its pieces put in place, it merely needs to be set in motion to
continue on its own, calmly, remorselessly. Thus the system of Saint-Just, who
conceives of government as a collection of institutions and laws, subject to reason,
executed by ministers whose particular will is effaced by regulation itself. Like a
good watch, good government is reglé. In this vein, Saint-Just, discussing the
censor’s role in republican government, distinguishes between weak government,
where one must depend on individual merit, and strong (robuste) government, in
which “la force et l’harmonie des institutions” operate to good effect.422 Contrasting
weak government, perhaps beholding something like Machiavelli’s competing great
men in his mind’s eye, with the strong, Saint-Just clearly portrays a government that
is a mechanism or a watch movement operating in perfect time, a symphony of mere
parts giving expression to the impersonal administration of justice. Hence, on the one
hand, with weaker government, lacking in institutions, “il n’y a plus de contrat…il y a
une réaction continuelle de forces particulières;” on the other hand, with good
government, “il y en a un (sc., un contrat) qui règle tous les mouvements et fait
partout la loi…. il y a une force commune (sc., le ressort), dont chacun fait partie, et
qui concourt au même but et au même bien.”423 These are terms that, apart from
421 Cf. the Leviathan’s introduction, where Hobbes also invokes the watch. R. Tuck, ed., Hobbes: Leviathan, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2006 [1991] p. 9 422Institutions républicaines, Kupiec, op. cit., p. 1140 423ibid. Although he had meant it as a criticism, it was, nonetheless, a general statement of reality, when he said, “[L]a justice est rendue en France au nom du
153
describing the operation of a clockwork movement, presage Weber’s bureaucratic
cage (Gehäuse): Saint-Just saw that justice could not be left to anything as uncertain
and unreliable as chance or men’s hearts.424 He was determined to design such a state
where what was law, that is, volonté generale raisonnable made real, would find
complete, inexorable expression, without exception, for all men, equality perforce.
This was nature recreated as impersonal mechanism, presenting a scene on which a
reintroduced savage man would carry out his independent life, free.425
A problem remained. Laws do not speak, but require flesh and blood men to
implement them.426 Yet, Saint-Just distrusted bureaucrats even more than he
monarque…par la bouche du magistrat….” L’esprit de la révolution in Kupiec, op. cit., p. 381. 424Needless to say, even those who argue about public administration as a science merely hope that the expert will be motivated by objective, scientific knowledge, hardly the dubious uncertainties of subjective reflections. Weber used the word Gehäuse to describe the bureaucratic future, a word that in German refers to a watch case. Perhaps he too was echoing watch metaphor, but in a negative way. It is curious that Baehr does not take up this aspect. P. Baehr, “The ‘Iron Cage’ and the ‘Shell as Hard as Steel’: Parsons, Weber, and the Stahlhartes Gehäuse Metaphor in the Protestant Ethic and the Spirit of Capitalism,” History and Theory 40.2 (May, 2001), pp. 153-69 425It is a kind of early paternalism: government carried out, even against the wishes of the governed, in their interest. While Saint-Just and Robespierre sought to hasten man’s perfectibility, S. Conly in her book on paternalism abandons perfectibility, perhaps because she implicitly considers it hopeless. Against Autonomy: Justifying Coercive Paternalism, Cambridge, 2014 [2013] Cf. C. Caldwell’s comment that education is insufficient: “Coaxers and coercers discover common ground,” Financial Times, March 1, 2013. 426He acknowledged in 9 thermidor that without magistrates, government would cease (anéantie). Kupiec, op. cit., p. 783 But the crux of the problem is, to use Rousseau’s words, this: “[l]e corps chargé de l’exécution de vos Loix en est l’interprete et l’arbitre suprême; il les fait parler comme il lui plaît; il peut les faire taire; il peut même les violer sans que vous puissiez y mettre ordre….” Lettres écrites de la Montagne, Septième lettre, Derathé, op. cit., p. 814.
154
distrusted his fellow men.427 Whether or not he was animated by memories of the
ancien régime, he evinced an enduring distrust of officials and, consequently, utterly
rejected by implication any value placed on some kind of magisterial volonté de corps
that Rousseau had suggested could limit the prince. Therefore, he demanded that
magistrates be moral models for citizens to follow, constrained by law and removed
from the civic community, rendered institutional others: they were not to be citizens
precisely because the danger they represented by their tendency towards volonté de
corps threatened to make them more powerful than citizens themselves.428 Saint-Just
says, “whoever is a magistrate is no longer of the people.”429 Moreover, one must not
even address an official as a citizen because the very title is superior to him.430
Magistrates, therefore, must constitute something outside the political community, a
community which, ideally, has itself ceased to be political in any meaningful sense.
Indeed, motivated by “fear,” magistrates, themselves function as mere cogs,
exhibiting the kind of “inflexibility” that prevents those relationships of the past,
dependency, and other human factors that lead to faction.431 Saint-Just’s officials are
427 L’esprit, in Kupiec, op. cit., p. 385; “tout officier public est un tyran.” L’esprit, in Kupiec, op. cit., p. 426 428moral example, Institutions républicaines, Kupiec, op. cit., p. 1144 Modern discussions of public administration frequently see bureaucrats as others, not as citizens per se. See, for example, McGregor, op. cit. 429Institutions républicaines, Kupiec, op. cit., p. 1139 cf. L’esprit, Kupiec, op. cit., p. 385 430Institutions républicaines, Kupiec, op. cit., p. 1139 431Institutions républicaines, Kupiec, op. cit., p. 1144 In their study of Qin China, Kiser and Cai highlight the role of the legalist school, which rigidly stressed official obedience to law and duty, to the formation of bureaucracy. For an example of this school of thought, see B. Watson, trans., Han Fei Tzu: Basic Writings, New York, 1964. Saint-Just’s idea of government accords well with Han Fei’s recommendation that ministers should only do exactly and only what they are assigned, and the ruler should punish even those who accomplish good outside of their task. p. 32
155
Aristotle’s “living tools.” Saint-Just’s vision, then, is even more rigid and
mechanistic than Rousseau’s because, perhaps, his distrust of his fellow man, despite
his proclaimed faith in the people, was so intense, particularly where matters of
power were involved.432 For him, the only means to ensure total order for the rational
machine of government consisted of an arrangement of ordered institutions, complete
obedience to law, and a wall of separation between administrators and citizens. In this
way alone could a proper, indeed, moral community exist, that is, with government
obedient to the community’s rational expression through law, its officialdom
functioning as its literal servant. This is the very substance of democratic control in
the modern sense, albeit one of its more conceptually robust manifestations.
Democratic control has been an enduring subject of concern for public
administration.433 Put differently, the fundamental problem has been the discretion of
432The people (le peuple or la nation), it is worth recalling, is a collective entity, not truly a group of individuals. For the intellectual background to the idea of nation, see D. Bell, The Cult of the Nation in France, Cambridge, 2003 [2001]. 433“Public responsibility demands the willing subjection of the bureaucracy to the laws as the general instructions of the representatives of the people.” F. Morstein-Marx, op. cit., p. 44; D. Levitan, “The Responsibility of Administrative Officials in a Democratic Society,” Political Science Quarterly 61.4 (Dec., 1946), pp. 562-98; J. Wilson, op. cit., pp. 334-6 Note that this tension has come to be recast in some circles as a principal-agent problem. K. Bawn, “Political Control Versus Expertise: Congressional Choices about Administrative Procedures,” American Political Science Review 89.1 (Mar., 1995), pp. 62-73 The idea of democratic control is undermined as citizens come to be viewed as customers by the bureaucracy. See J. Stewart, “Advance or Retreat: From the traditions of Public Administration to the new public management and beyond,” Public Policy and Administration 13.4 (Winter, 1998), pp. 12-27; E. Suleiman, Dismantling Democratic States, Princeton, 2003 It is worth stressing that the shift to empiricism in the study of administration has tended to put the research emphasis more on identifying who actually does control rather than the normative question of who should control. Thus, for example, one can discuss at length the degree to which Congress actually influences the bureaucracy without considering what the situation ought to be. T. Moe, “An Assessment of the Positive Theory of ‘Congressional Dominance’,” Legislative Studies Quarterly 12.4 (Nov.,
156
the official within the context of the polity’s sovereign will. Thus, Finer in his well-
known debate with Friedrich, argued that official responsibility within the political
context was a matter of external control. Officials must be answerable, not to
individual conscience or some vague sense of professionalism, but to the oversight
and direction of the legislature or executive as the sovereign people’s
representative.434 Indeed, echoing Han Fei’s warnings about excess, Finer went so far
as to argue that one must be concerned not only about the bad official, but also the
good one.435 In other words, excess in and of itself, for good or ill, amounts to
official usurpation of the legislature’s right to command.436 As Finer bluntly put it in
an earlier article, “…the first commandment is, Subservience!”437 Despite that
1987), pp. 475-520; B. Wood and R. Waterman, “The Dynamics of Political Control of the Bureaucracy,” American Political Science Review 85.3 (Sep., 1991), pp. 801-28. The focus of the present discussion is on normative, not empirical questions. 434H. Finer, “Administrative Responsibility in Democratic Government,” Public Administration Review 1.4 (1941), pp. 335-50; see too “Better Government Personnel,” Political Science Quarterly 51.4 (Dec., 1936), pp. 569-99, responsibility is taken up at pp. 580-2 Finer seems to emphasize the legislature as a body to which bureaucracy must ultimately answer. H. Simon advocates this approach because, he argues, the administrative task must in practice involve values and judgments. Administrative Behavior: A Study of Decision-Making Processes in Administrative Organization, New York, 1976 [1945], p. 58. B. Constant saw this as potentially giving one branch of government excessive power and devised a different approach. See M. Hartman, “Benjamin Constant and the Question of Ministerial Responsibility in France, 1814-1815,” Journal of European Studies 6 (1976), pp. 248-61. Interestingly, Hamilton and Jefferson may have anticipated Finer and Friedrich. L. Caldwell, The Administrative Theories of Hamilton and Jefferson, New York, 1988 [1944]. For an informative and useful survey of the public administration literature through its date of publication, see D. Waldo, The Administrative State: A Study of the Political Theory of American Public Administration, New York, 1948. 435“Responsibility,” p. 338a 436“Responsibility,” p. 341a 437“Government,” p. 582 Finer clearly idealizes the British civil service, which saw neutrality and subservience as a professional ethos. Cf. H. Dale, The Higher Civil Service of Great Britain, Oxford 1941, esp. ch. 5, “Relations with Ministers and Parliament.” It would, however, be quite mistaken to view this as an attitude of the
157
apparently absolute statement, he does allow that an official is not to serve merely as
a passive instrument awaiting the minister’s commanding touch. Rather, without
specifying exactly where the balance is to be struck, he does allow that the official
has a capacity to advise, albeit, repeating a very traditional formulation, decisions
once made are to be carried out. Such is his understanding of “political control,”
which, he argues, is to bureaucracy, what market discipline is to the business.438
Finer’s conclusion echoes Weber’s regarding the need for bureaucracy to serve,
although he did not have much confidence in professionalism’s efficacy as a
safeguard against bureaucratic independence.439 This is in some sense a restating of
the principle articulated by Rousseau, namely, that the decision (will) and its
execution (act) are separate domains.440
Public administration pioneers like Wilson and Goodnow essentially maintain
this distinction as well.441 For them, politics represented a parlous domain from
past: see, for example, M. Quinlan, “Ethics in Public Service,” Governance 6 (1993), pp. 538-44 438“Government,” pp. 582-4 (political control, price mechanism at p. 583); pp. 586-7 (officials to give advice). Cf. Schumpeter’s “third condition” for successful democracy. J. Schumpeter, Capitalism, Socialism and Democracy, New York, 1975 [1942], p. 293 439Parliamentary control is of critical importance to Weber. See, for example, “Suffrage and Democracy in Germany,” in Lassman, op. cit., pp. 126-7 and “Parliament and Government in Germany,” Lassman, op. cit., p. 159ff. As an ethical matter, the official “who receives an order which, in his view, is wrong can – and should – raise objections. If his superior then insists on the instruction it is not merely the duty of the official, it is also a point of honour for him to carry it out as if it corresponded to his own innermost conviction….” (emphasis in original) p. 160 This duty arises from a professional conception of “office.” 440Goodnow writes, “…popular government requires that it is the executing authority which shall be subordinated to the expressing authority, since the latter in the nature of things can be made much more representative of the people than can the executing authority.” op. cit., p. 24 441Wilson, op. cit.; Goodnow, op. cit.
158
which the civic community’s desires would emerge, and administration existed to
carry out those desires immune from political contamination.442 Politics amounted to
“the expression of the will of the state;” administration consists in “executing the will
of the state.”443 Therefore, administration itself, which carries out law and must use
judgment to fit particular cases, must not be subject to politics: this ensures that
administration remains impartial, just, and efficient.444 F. Morstein-Marx adds that
neutrality is a means to avoid compromising “the basic purpose of the administrative
system as an instrumentality of equal use for any government coming to power
lawfully.”445 (emphasis added) Of course, this discretionary power, viz., the
application of general rules to specific cases, cannot be exercised in arbitrary
fashion.446 In fact, it is this discretionary capacity that Saint-Just and Rousseau both
saw as a danger. It appears, though, that, while Saint-Just saw the solution to this
problem in the ruthless imposition of rules, Goodnow and others somehow viewed
the solution as a matter of objective rationality. In other words, the official, properly
trained and dealing with facts in the manner of a scientist, would become a kind of
442On this distinction, see L. O’Toole, “Doctrines and Developments: Separation of Powers, the Politics-Administration Dichotomy, and the Rise of the Administrative State,” Public Administration Review 47.1 (Jan.-Feb., 1987), pp. 17-25; Karl, op. cit. 443Goodnow, op. cit., pp. 23 and 72; M. Harmon and J. White, “’Decision’ and ‘Action’ as Contrasting Perspectives in Organization Theory,” Public Administration Review 49.2 (Mar.-Apr., 1989), pp. 144-52 444Goodnow, op. cit., p. 84; Cf. Wilson: “…administration lies outside the proper sphere of politics.” (emphasis in original) op. cit., p. 210 445op. cit., p. 130; see also his comments at pp. 137-8 446In Wilson’s words, “Public administration is detailed and systematic execution of public law. Every particular application of general law is an act of administration.” op. cit., p. 212 Simon reframes the politics-administration distinction as one between facts and values. While this retains the binary nature of the problem as articulated, for example, by Goodnow, he argues that the functional separation implied for legislatures and administrations cannot in practice be maintained. Officials necessarily are concerned with both facts and values as are legislatures. op. cit., Ch. 3
159
impersonal translator of reality, a kind of corporeal volonté raisonnable. As
Goodnow claimed, administration was apart from politics because “it embraces fields
of semi-scientific, quasi-judicial and quasi-business or commercial activity – work
which has little if any influence on the expression of the true state will.”447 Wilson
himself had claimed, “[a]dministrative questions are not political questions” and he
asserted as too “obvious” to require discussion the notion that administrative officials
were essentially technical in nature.448 Officials, on Goodnow’s understanding, were
engaged in “the pursuit of truth,” in other words, an impersonal and unbiased activity
that would in some sense reflect in its application objective reality.449 Oakeshott
seems to capture this sentiment when he writes,
The conduct of affairs, for the Rationalist, is a matter of solving problems, and in this no man can hope to be successful whose reason has become inflexible by surrender to habit or is clouded by the fumes of tradition. In this activity the character which the Rationalist claims for himself is the character of the engineer, whose mind (it is supposed) is controlled throughout by the appropriate technique and whose first step is to dismiss from his attention everything not directly related to his specific intentions.450
Oakeshott is writing about politics, but he captures the faith that seems to undergird
Wilson and Goodnow’s concept of the bureaucrat as technician: the idea that his
impersonal sorting of facts, based in reason, reflects his role, and, from their
447op. cit., p. 85; Wilson too had business practices in the back of his mind: “The field of administration is a field of business.” op. cit., pp. 201 and 209 Cf. the idea of planning in Mannheim, which effectively displaces politics. K. Mannheim, Man and Society in an Age of Reconstruction, New York, 1940 448op. cit., pp. 210-1 449ibid. 450M. Oakeshott, “Rationalism in politics,” in Rationalism in politics and other essays, Indianapolis, 1991, pp. 5-42, quotation at p. 9
160
perspective, solves the problem of an arbitrary officialdom.451 After all, if politics are
the domain of caprice, administration is the domain of problem-solving, calling for
science. It truly does evoke the vision of Saint-Just whose dream of recreating a state
of nature through the absolute, impartial application of law was if anything the
unflinching application of pure reason revealing nature. Here, to put it differently, the
same hope seems to animate a vision of apolitical, rational technocrats, implementing
the sovereign will in a manner that is objectively correct. In this way, bureaucratic
subservience to popular sovereignty is maintained because the civic community
provides the direction for the ship of state, while all the activities of the ship’s crew
are ostensibly carried out on the basis of what is objectively required. When sailing
to a destination, one cannot debate the objective necessity of unfurling a sail. Thus,
bureaucracy is ostensibly maintained as the sovereign’s servant, employing delegated
discretion only as dictated by objective circumstances.452
Any normative conception of bureaucracy must relate its function to the
sovereign’s will. Whether that sovereign is a monarch, as historically often was the
case in many states that developed formalized administration, or “the people,” as has
become increasingly common, the fundamental issue has been one of subordinating
451On the problem with the purely “technical” role envisioned here, see D. Thompson, “Ascribing Responsibility to Advisers in Government,” Ethics 93.3 (Apr., 1983), pp. 546-60 452This arrangement was of specific concern to Weber who identified bureaucratic expertise as a source of power vis-à-vis the legislature. He saw that “…the position of power of all officials rests on knowledge.” (emphasis in original) Lassman, op. cit., p. 178ff, quotation on p. 178 Gulick argues that politics, not in the sense of a spoils system, must influence administration because that would undermine the very notion of self-rule. Here, though, he mainly means politics as the expression of government’s “general will.” L. Gulick, “Politics, Administration, and the ‘New Deal’,” Annals of the American Academy of Political and Social Science 169 (Sep., 1933), pp. 55-66
161
the bureaucracy to the sovereign. Machiavelli grasped at this idea when he considered
how a prince might ensure the effective execution of his wishes; in his consideration
of a republican government, however, the idea of the state as an independent entity
capable of a will was less clear. Instead, it appeared that the fundamental problem
was the provision of a framework that allowed great men to compete in a way that
allowed the republic to continue. Accomplishing what was in the republic’s interests
was a matter of balancing the ambitions of these great men against one another: the
polity envisioned here was competitive and turbulent. Great captains might behave
appropriately because they sought glory and feared their competitors, but they were
not men in service to a sovereign. The strong articulation of sovereignty came with
Bodin. His theory and its subsequent permutations laid the groundwork for the idea
that bureaucracy must be subordinate to the sovereign people. Of course, the problem
of official discretion was not uniquely a problem for modern theorists like Weber.
Bodin and those after him, like Rousseau and Saint-Just, considered the matter, and in
light of the logic of sovereignty, determined that discretion must be limited. In its
most extreme articulation, Saint-Just envisioned a scheme in which officials, set apart
from the political community, no longer exercised discretion in any meaningful sense
because law would be perfectly expressed as a kind of reasoned revelation. And this
was relevant to the pioneers of public administration because they looked to the
continent for their models of professional bureaucracy. The effort to separate
execution and decision, seen as administration and politics, gave bureaucrats some
discretion in matching actual circumstances to legislation. But this too was an
attenuated discretion in the sense that reason and science would lead to impartiality.
162
In this sense, there is no real discretion in applying a rule to an actual case any more
than there would be discretion in deciding the sum of two numbers. The facts simply
emerge; objective reality is revealed. Under this understanding then, the danger of
discretion evaporates, and the public servant both carries out the sovereign will and
matches political values to objective facts.
163
Chapter 5
The Discretion of Citizens as Officials
I have explored in the preceding chapters two currents of thought about the
relationship between magistrates and the political order in which they find
themselves. On the one hand, there is what I will call alternatively a participatory or
republican tradition that sees magistrates as leading citizens, relying to a large extent
on their own discretion and turning to slaves, dependents, or friends as they fulfill
their duties in furtherance of the state’s policies. The magistrates, using discretion
that is organic to their role, make the decisions; the staffs carry them out. This is a
natural reflection both of their status as citizen-magistrates and of the socially
subordinate nature of those called upon to assist them.453 Here, social and political
arrangements are mutually reinforcing, and magistrates, although they may, as human
beings are wont to do, sometimes abuse their authority, are in theory, at least, using
discretion for the community’s good. The other strand of theorizing about
magistrates is absolutist. This approach assigns the role of decision to a robust
sovereign and the role of execution to the sovereign’s officials. The gradual
displacement of monarchs by peoples only meant that peoples became sovereigns,
and theories about how officials are to behave, have been informed fundamentally by
this absolutist understanding of the relationship between sovereign and government.
Even modifications allowing for official discretion have cast it in objective terms that
boil down, not to moral question of right or wrong, but objective ones of fact. This is
in some sense analogous to the idea that discretion plays no role in deciding whether
453Friends, obviously, are not subordinates.
164
the temperature outside if 80 degrees or not. Thus, value judgments generally remain
the purview of the sovereign, who decides, not administrators as public servants.
Even when the discussion has turned to those officials who might use their discretion,
the emphasis has mostly been on those of senior rank, the implication being that
subordinates carry out their assigned tasks as assigned.454 To be brief, strong
conceptions of sovereignty have informed the normative view of bureaucratic
responsiveness: even in democracies, the emphasis has been on bureaucrats fulfilling
the people’s sovereign will.455 Their different outlooks notwithstanding, absolutist
and participatory approaches to official duty have identified the question of discretion
as a matter of central importance. In the present chapter, I will argue that official
discretion within the context of a modern democracy ought to remain attentive to the
official’s status, not as a public servant, but as a citizen. This is an understanding that
draws upon a participatory theory of magistracy, and it implies that the prior status of
any public servant as a citizen always entails an implicit capacity to judge
circumstances and wield discretion on his own authority. Limiting factors derived
from role, law, or procedure are likely to be influential in his use of discretion, if not
decisive in most cases, but on theoretical grounds the choice to heed any of those or
his own conscience derives not from such secondary considerations, but from his
status as citizen, which is prior to all. After all, citizens partake of sovereignty, and
are not merely the sovereign’s subjects.
454See, for example, Goodnow, op. cit., p. 88 455Consider the concerns voiced at the 2014 American Political Science Association conference by B. Ginsberg and J. Bachner regarding the problem of the government not being demographically like the people. P. Wood, “Federal workers tend to be whiter; richer; more liberal,” Baltimore Sun, October 5, 2014, p. 8.
165
Discretion boils down to choices. Will an official follow the letter of the law?
Will he refrain from enforcing the law? Will he actively resist the law? Will he
enlist the help of his fellow citizens to thwart the law? Discretion entails such
questions and many others. But, as I said, it is a matter of choice, and the question
has always been whether or not there is a theoretical justification for officials to use
their own judgment to make those choices. I say theoretical because human beings
are not automata: some will make choices regardless of the rules.456 Bodin, who, as
we saw earlier, was primarily interested in stability, discussed discretion as a
theoretical matter when he spoke about the possibility of magistrates resigning,
disregarding instructions, or even committing tyrannicide. The possibility, not to say
likelihood, of erroneous opinion and the danger of setting a bad example were enough
for him to leave these options theoretical: best, he seemed to conclude, to do what one
is told. Saint-Just offered an extreme articulation of this view when he suggested that
public servants would simply carry out laws based on reason.457 And in modern
terms, Weber offered an idealized version of bureaucrats who, whatever their
misgivings and counsel, would, as a matter of professional duty, execute whatever
they were bidden.458 The real world, however, is not like this. Rather, it is full of
examples of people bending rules and doing other than what bureaucratic duty would
456Thus the need to accept that fact and make the institution function with that as a given! R. O’Leary, The Ethics of Dissent: Managing Guerilla Government, Washington, 2006 457p. 149ff., supra. 458On Weber and the state, see A. Anter, “L’histoire de l’État comme histoire de la bureaucratie,” Trivium 7 (2010), pp. 2-15
166
suggest.459 This is not to say that the political community is utter chaos: the persistent
claim that people left to their own devices would simply produce confusion has not
occurred. Instead, one finds a continuum between obedience and disobedience.
The thrust of a large body of empirically-oriented literature that arose as a
corrective, if not refutation, of Weber’s idealized bureaucrat, speaks grosso modo
with one voice, emphasizing the common-sense notion that human beings do not
always do as they are told, regardless of their professional or legal obligations. In
Patterns of Industrial Bureaucracy, Gouldner described resistance encountered by a
management that attempted to bring more formality to the organization of a gypsum
plant.460 In the Management of Innovation, Burns detailed the social phenomena at
work in the Scottish electronics companies attempting to reorient themselves to a
post-World War consumer market.461 Warwick in A Theory of Public Bureaucracy
similarly examined how U.S. State Department bureaucrats stymied management
innovations introduced by short-term appointees.462 Noting that studies of
bureaucracy have been too indebted to Weber’s ideal type, Warwick argued that the
political realities of bureaucracy and the role played by bureaucrats themselves in
shaping organizations have consequently not been given their due. In other words,
professional devotion to duty through subordination to one’s political masters is pace
Weber not reflective of reality.463 Niskanen’s approach goes a step further by using
459Law enforcement is perhaps one of the starkest examples of this. As Davis argues, individual police officers make policy, much of it, formally illegal. K. Davis, Discretionary Justice: a Preliminary Inquiry, Urbana, 1973 [1969], pp. 80-90 460Gouldner, op. cit. 461Burns, op. cit. 462Warwick, op. cit. 463Note the sometimes polemical tone of Ch. 10
167
economic principles to describe and explain bureaucratic behaviors. In essence, this
is a principal-agent model that portrays the participants as rational utility-
maximizers.464 To be sure this descriptive project leads him to offer advice on how to
manage bureaucracies, but his approach is not fundamentally normative. In their
book, Deliberate Discretion?, Huber and Shipan discerned conditions under which
legislatures either left delegated authority vague or attempted to delineate with great
specificity what was being left to bureaucracies to do.465 Theirs too is a principal-
agent, rational-choice approach: “…the Bureaucrat, like the Politician, is a strategic
political actor who will make choices that are predicated on achieving his most
preferred policy outcome.”466 In Forging Bureaucratic Autonomy the issue for
Carpenter was not whether or not bureaucracies behave according to Weber’s
formulation, but when bureaucrats have succeeded – this is a matter of history – in
making themselves political actors, capable of advocating issues of concern to them
over and against the desires of politicians.467 Even Kingsley’s famous study of the
English bureaucracy, Representative Bureaucracy: An Interpretation of the British
Civil Service, which argued that the British civil servant simply came more or less
from the same class as the ministers and politicians, thereby reflecting the same
outlook, was similarly descriptive-historical in its approach.468 Being empirical and
464Niskanen, op. cit. 465Huber and Shipan, op. cit. 466p. 84 467Carpenter, op. cit. 468Kingsley, op. cit.
168
written ostensibly to describe actual behavior, such approaches have generally
stressed value-free description over prescription.469
Of course, normative considerations can emerge from empirically grounded
observation – is this not the case with Aristotle’s Politics?470 The modern tendency,
however, is often to produce narrow prescriptions that address issues of immediate
concern, are particularistic and utilitarian in nature, and, of especial importance here,
offer little to suggest that an official might act on the basis of his own moral
considerations, whatever those may be.471 But discretion for good or ill is of central
importance. Finer, for example, worried about the official who used discretion in a
manner not prescribed by rule, regardless of motive, for good or ill.472 Yet it remains,
says Davis, “indispensible for the individualization of justice.”473 And it hardly seems
possible, except in those cases easily adapted to very specific rules or to the
capabilities of modern technology, to remove it completely from the bureaucrat’s
469Cf. J. Scott, Comparative Political Corruption, Englewood Cliffs, 1972, Ch. 1, esp. his comments about avoiding normativity pp. 3-4; J. Noonan, Bribes, New York, 1984, pp. 544-50; P. Chabal and J.-P. Daloz, Africa Works: Disorder as Political Instrument, Oxford, 1999, Ch. 7 470It is worth stressing here that the Politics is just one part of an interlocking group of texts: the Constitution of Athens, the Politics, Eudemian/Nicomachean Ethics, and the Rhetoric. The difference between the fruits of Aristotle’s empiricism and that of Gouldner or Warwick or any number of modern authors who discern patterns or make normative claims on the basis of their research is stark indeed. 471For an example of an approach motivated by concerns of the moment, see R. Wood, “Ethics in Government as a Problem of Executive Management,” Public Administration Review 15.1 (Winter, 1955), pp. 1-7 472cf. fn. 431, p. 154, supra. Rules, of course, present their own problems. See, H. van Gunsteren, The Quest for Control: A Critique of the Rational-Central-Rule Approach in Public Affairs, London 1976; L. Muehlhauser and L. Helm, “Intelligence Explosion and Machine Ethics,” Machine Intelligence Research Institute (October 01, 2014), www.intelligence.org/files/IE-ME.pdf; A. Eden, et al., edd., Singularity Hypotheses: A Scientific and Philosophical Assessment, Berlin, 2012, pp. 101-26 473op. cit., p. 25
169
hands. The question then becomes one of how to limit or control the use of
discretion. Frequently, several means are invoked: law, procedure, oversight, and
role.474 In other words, we can make laws indicating exactly what is to be done or not
done, as when we say that the government shall not discriminate against certain
minority groups. We can ensure that exact procedures are followed as when we lay
out the rules for public contracting. We can provide for oversight by a variety of
bodies ranging from the Congress, to the Judiciary, to administrative bodies. And we
can say that the particular position held by an official serves to limit his capacity to
act.
Falling back on such measures as law, procedure, oversight, and role is
reasonable in a modern world where man is the measure of everything. Scholarly
treatment of discretion typically does not describe the moral content that would
inform an official’s use of discretion. This is not very surprising. Any post-
Enlightenment approach to such questions, when not theologically grounded, usually
appears utterly implausible. There hardly remains any convincing basis for saying
that anything is right or wrong.475 We can argue, for example, that slavery is wrong,
but beyond a kind of assertion derived from the consensus of civilized peoples (ius
gentium), there actually is no metaphysical basis in the modern public sphere for such
474This is not an exhaustive list. Professionalism is another means of control, but the question of whether or not all bureaucrats form a professional class in the way that the clergy, or lawyers, or physicians do, is far from settled. Obviously, Weber felt that professionalism was important. 475M. Horkheimer, The Eclipse of Reason, London, 2004 [1947]. This lack of moral consensus has important implications for artificial intelligence. Muehlhauser and Helm, op. cit.
170
an assertion.476 It was this kind of observation that initially led MacIntyre, for
example, to resuscitate virtue ethics as a basis of action.477 But all of this is rather
arbitrary in the modern context: there is no metaphysical hook on which we can hang
any conception of right or wrong. No sovereign or lawgiver, outside and apart from
man, exists to tell us what to do.478 And so the argument of Rawls, for example, is
hard to swallow precisely because there is no real basis for any of his foundational
claims. Moreover, his antipathy towards all the beliefs that are the very substance of
politics, such as religion and moral values, and his definition of reasonableness,
which is itself a veritable denial of any meaningful diversity, completely undermine
the project as democratic polity: what he proposes is anything but that, and supported
by nothing more than his own moral assertions.479 Given this moral aporia, what can
those interested in official discretion do, but fall back on man-made mechanisms to
constrain it? It strikes me that the collapse of theology has removed the only external
and metaphysical basis for moral action, leaving man as, so to speak, the final
criterion: procedure, nomos, or law, seen as Rechtsstaat or some denatured form
476“Because no logical or a priori basis exists on which people might try to persuade one another to agree on it other than by appealing to share utilities, shared values based on some transcendent moral conception of the good cannot be rationally decided upon.” Harmon and White, op. cit., p. 145b I use the phrase “public sphere” pointedly because religion, which for many people offers some metaphysical support, is in the Western democracies usually seen as a private matter. Rawls, for example, argues that religion does not belong in the political realm. It is worth recalling that ius gentium was traditionally little more than the shared moeurs of civilized peoples. 477Anscombe, op. cit.; MacIntyre, op. cit. 478This was Maritain’s critique of the word, sovereign, when applied to man. fn. 332, p. 125, supra. 479I leave aside the question whether fairness is a means or an end, although it does strike me as something instrumental. Behind the veil of ignorance, I find but one person. Schmitt’s point about the quiddity of politics is utterly opposed to the vision of Rawls, but far more plausible. C. Schmitt, The Concept of the Political, Chicago, 2007 [1995]
171
thereof, becomes the yardstick.480 At any rate, it is worth bearing in mind that actual
moral content is often the scope of discussions about the cases where bureaucrats
might exercise discretion for the good. And discretion for just ends is precisely
where officials as citizens can be effective.
In Discretionary Justice, Davis relates a telling anecdote that bears quoting
because it illustrates the issue of discretion and just ends:
In interviewing immigration officers, I have often inquired whether the result in a particular case does not seem unjust, and the answer has often been: “Yes, but we had no choice: the statute compels the answer we gave.” My next question would usually be: “Did you make note of the case, with a view to recommending a statutory change?” The answer was invariably no. The attitude is that as long as the injustice is caused by the statute, the administrator has no reason for concern.481
The interesting aspect of this statement is not the fact that these officials did not go up
their hierarchical chain to inform decision makers about the unjust results of policy.
Davis sees that as the critical issue, and it might be that among the actions available
to officials is the option to advise superiors about unjust outcomes. But I see the
interesting point illustrated here as being that officials were perfectly willing to accept
injustice and do nothing about it because responsibility could be assigned elsewhere.
They behave as passive instruments. Yet, much like jury nullification, discretion
itself, by appealing to moral values outside those of the organization, might provide
480K. Denhart and B. Catron, “The Management of Ideals: A Political Perspective on Ethics,” Public Administration Review 49.2 (Mar.-Apr., 1989), pp. 187-93; Davis, op. cit. Tierney offers interesting comments on the state of affairs. See B. Tierney, “‘The Prince is Not Bound by the Laws.’ Accursius and the Origins of the Modern State,” Comparative Studies in Society and History 5.4 (Jul. 1963), pp. 378-400 On political versus legal control, see T. O’Neill, “Liberal Constitutionalism & Bureaucratic Discretion,” Polity 20.3 (Spring, 1988), pp. 371-92 481Davis, op. cit., pp. 52-3
172
an immediate remedy on the basis of actual circumstances, although it is equally clear
from this or any number of other examples that the majority of bureaucrats are
perfectly willing to carry out their duties mechanically on the theory that
responsibility for the outcome lies elsewhere.482 Later, Davis illustrates the role of
discretion in actual practice with the case of beat police officers. These men and
women, as Davis argues, are, in fact, involved every day in the using their discretion
to make and execute policy. An officer might pull one person over for speeding and
let him go. He might pull over another and issue a citation. It is his discretion that
decides whether or not he cites one person or the other, regardless of whether or not
the law has a general prohibition against speeding. As Davis points out, whether or
not they choose to arrest one person or another is fundamentally arbitrary. And
individual decisions not to arrest or cite offenders, whether or not the results are just,
take place regardless of the letter of the law and without publication of any rules
explaining to the public in advance how laws will be put into practice.483 His purpose
is not to argue in favor of an excessively legalistic approach: there must be scope to
act on the basis of actual circumstances. But, he says, there is a utility in being open:
using rules or adjudication to decide specific cases, or to express in what way
legislation or policy will actually be put into practice. The alternative, exemplified by
the current behavior of police departments, is simply to engage in a capricious
482R. Schopp, “Verdicts of Conscience: Nullification and Necessity as Jury Responses to Crimes of Conscience,” Southern California Law Review 69 (1995-6), pp. 2039-116 When such notions still had meaning, natural law did provide a basis for resistance to manmade law or civil law. 483Davis, op. cit., pp. 80-90; J. Wilson, Bureaucracy, pp. 327-9 Davis, in a vein reminiscent of Taylor’s Scientific Management, worries that beat police officers lack the education and seniority necessary to the task, and suggests that department heads should be the ones deciding these matters.
173
administration of justice that is often contrary to the letter, if not the spirit, of the law
or, in a word, illegal. For him, the problem is not discretion per se, because that is in
actual practice policy’s lifeblood, but the task of ensuring that how it will be
employed is articulated clearly and in advance by those in a position to know the
circumstances of its application. We see here that he relates the use of discretion to
the actual role of the police officer, and calls for procedure to curtail what he
considers excessive discretion. In essence, Davis accepts the amount of discretion
necessary to the task: anything beyond that can lead to injustice. It is the excessive
discretion that Davis cannot stomach, and the remedy comes down to role, rule, and
procedure.
For their parts, Burke and Dobel both rein in discretion fundamentally on the
basis of role. Burke argues that the ability of officials to take matters into their own
hands is essentially circumscribed by both their roles as bureaucrats, duty-bound to
serve the state, and the actual circumstances of knowledge and proximity. In other
words, officials have duties to inform decision-makers, but this duty relates to what
they are in a position to know and where they are located within the organization. Put
differently, someone’s duty to be informed about a given matter depends on his actual
relationship to it. An official’s personal or chance interest in a matter may, given his
actual position, lie outside the scope of his duties and, thus, would in itself provide no
justification to intervene or take action. Therefore, apart from general instances
where statutory rules designed to encourage whistle-blowing encourage anyone with
knowledge of waste, fraud, or abuse, to come forward, an official who happens to
know that something is unjust may not be duty-bound to do much about it, if it is
174
beyond the scope of his assigned tasks and position within the organization. To
illustrate:
With respect to the general public, for example, lack of public attention to politics, low level of participation, distorted political agendas, malapportionment…and other impediments to political participation do indeed affect the character of democratic politics and, by implication, its decision-making process…. Bureaucrats stand in no (or at best minimal) causal relationship to these conditions; as a result they bear no responsibility for their remedy. One might claim, as a good democrat, that officials should devote their time, energy, and institutional resources to educating the public…. But this kind of superogatory effort should not be encouraged as responsible conduct, since it stands in no meaningful relationship to a bureaucrat’s official role….484 (emphasis added)
An official, however, is obligated to know what pertains to his job, and to advise on
that basis regarding what he himself also knows. This is the substance of Burke’s
idea that bureaucrats must have a sense of responsibility: officials by virtue of their
office have responsibility for each other (something a little evocative of Rousseau’s
volonté de corps), a responsibility in policy formulation, and a responsibility for their
own choices. Prudence, as an instrument to guide discretion, figures in Burke’s
understanding: individuals must make the right choices. In the final analysis, the
official is bounded, nor do even foreseeably unjust results necessarily provide a basis
for acting contrary to policy.485 The burden, as with Davis, is to report problems up
the chain of command and let competent authorities make the decisions; fairness, in
the sense of righting wrongs, is, generally speaking, not within an official’s
competence.486 After all, simply allowing for responses to private morality would
484Burke, op. cit., pp. 64-5 485Burke, op. cit., p. 70 486Burke, op. cit., p. 69
175
“[set] political power to private purpose.”487 Obviously, role is central to Burke’s
understanding of “bureaucratic responsibility.”
In his book, Public Integrity, Dobel argues that a balance must be struck
between the duties of office and personal moral commitments, a balance that rests on
the use of prudential judgment.488 Prudence, a concept consciously borrowed from
Machiavelli, figures prominently because the official above all else ought to remain
effective: “[t]he relation of prudence to public integrity flows from the ‘effectiveness
imperative.’”489 The notion that one should live to fight another day means that
fighting every battle ultimately results in an official failing to achieve his moral ends.
Prudence also means that the official takes into account and is responsible or
answerable for what he intends to accomplish. Thus, “…if several principles or
goods conflict, individuals may choose to act on the ones they believe are most
feasible, will endure the longest, or involve the least amount of violence.”490
Prudence is “…the logic of excellence in political achievement.”491 For Dobel, an
official’s personal responsibility is important, but must be balanced by his legal role
because someone acting purely on his own can go too far: “Personal judgments and
initiatives in government must be tested by public deliberation and accountability.
This domesticates personal moral initiative while keeping it alive in government.”492
(emphasis added) Naturally, there are no absolute answers, and Dobel does not
487Burke, op. cit., p. 40 488Integrity, pp. 20-2; J. Dobel, “Personal Responsibility and Public Integrity,” Michigan Law Review 86.6 (May, 1988), pp. 1450-65 489Integrity, p. 18 490Integrity, p. 198 491ibid. 492“Personal Responsibility,” p. 1457
176
accept complete surrender to role; one cannot remain passive, but one is not
completely unbounded.493 All of this is well and good, but prudence, as an means to
good judgment, addresses, perhaps, only one part of the problem.494 Dobel cannot be
faulted for leaving open-ended whatever personal moral commitments might guide an
individual official. Little justification is offered, however, for the idea that an
official’s role, which serves as the basis for his capacity to act with prudence, should
imply this balance between, as the quotation from Davis suggests, statute and justice.
Dobel’s theory maintains the bureaucrat as a formal functionary whose organizational
position somehow ought to entail the exercise of prudential judgment, although it is
not always clear on what basis beyond the fact of his being an official. In other
words, his status as an official is the given, and in Dobel’s analysis the official is
someone separate from the political community.
An approach that sees bureaucrats as political actors is presented by Denhart
and Catron. They suggest that the political dimension of an official’s status calls for
something more than acting merely as an indifferent agent of policy: “…an
administrator must approach the decision from both the broad perspective of the
requirements of democratic ideals and the narrower institutional demands of
bureaucratic ideals.”495 Thus, administrators should not, in their view, be simple,
493Integrity, p. 74 494“Personal Responsibility,” pp. 1462-3 495Notice that the fact of expertise does not enter, although specialized knowedge was often offered as the rationale for exercising bureaucratic discretion. This, indeed, was the view of those, like Goodnow and Wilson, who espoused a science of public administration. But in the present instance neither knowledge nor expertise is invoked to justify taking action.
177
impersonal cogs.496 This ability to behave as a political agent responding to
individual circumstances should be grounded on an ethos that is both bureaucratic and
democratic by training and socialization. We might infer that this ethos arises almost
organically from a bureaucrat’s actual role and practice as an official. Denhart and
Catron, however, do not provide any obvious reason why officials should rely upon
“the requirements of democratic ideals” as opposed to firm adherence to
“bureaucratic ideals” beyond the circumstance of their involvement in the process:
this amounts to scope of action deriving from role. It does seem a rather capricious
assertion without some rationale provided for why the bureaucratic role might by its
nature entail political activity, although, empirically speaking, it surely must. In
short, it begs the following question: why would the official’s role not imply utter
subordination to legal requirements or superior authority? This after all is the nature
of delegated authority: the individual to whom discretion is delegated ought to
operate under the terms of delegation. Furthermore, how would a particular official’s
role provide any basis for examining circumstance and making decisions responsive
to ideas of the just? More often than not an official’s role finds expression exactly in
the fulfillment of impersonal duty regardless of actual circumstances, which suggests
that there is nothing organic to the constitution of bureaucratic role to suggest a
practical, legitimate capacity to exercise discretion in a manner informed by a sense
of justice originating anywhere else than the organization itself. Indeed, as Applbaum
implies, a role that entails as its duty executing acts of injustice hardly carries within
496op. cit., pp. 190b-91a Their discussion of a kind of duty both to judge and explain recalls Plato’s insistence that laws in Magnesia would contain preambles explaining their raison d’être.
178
its constitution the means to do the opposite.497 Interestingly, although Davis was
himself concerned that officials in such circumstances did not bring the problem to
the attention of those in a position to effect statutory change, there obviously might
have been another option: namely, to negate the statute in the interest of justice.498 It
would seem that the qualities suggested so far as inhering to role and providing a
basis for moral action are actually not related to the nature of the role itself. This
point can be illustrated, if we reflect again on the nature of law enforcement.
If we think of police officers, a perspective emerges that undermines the idea
that the official’s role per se would offer any organic ability to apply prudence or
democratic considerations. For modern circumstances now suggest that such moral
capacities are accidental, not essential to role. Technology’s encroachment into
traditionally administrative domains suggests this because the mechanistic application
of rules entails no prudence or democratic consideration whatsoever. This effectively
creates a collapsed view of legitimacy where “the justice question of ‘what to decide’
– given substantive conflict of interests, beliefs, or values – cannot be separated from
the legitimacy question of ‘how to decide’ or ‘who is to decide.’”499 Thus, for
example, when a red-light camera system uses radar to determine whether or not a
driver has violated the rules of the road and then takes and processes a photograph of
a car’s license plate, enabling a citation to be issued automatically to the owner of the
vehicle without any human mediation, it becomes clear that context in the sense
individual circumstances is rendered irrelevant to this rule-based, procedural
497Applbaum, op. cit., p. 259 498Applbaum, op. cit., p. 207 499Applbaum, op. cit, p. 217
179
conception of duty: here duty is nothing more than specific function or process.500
Technology now makes possible what Saint-Just only dreamt of. This example also
illustrates how a rule only functions by a process of reductionism or denial of context:
particular circumstance is completely irrelevant to a rule that defines a violation on
purely objective, finite criteria.501 By this criterion, all facts are trimmed to fit the
same procrustean bed of rules. Reality – the “messy world of details,” which a
human being serving as a police officer might consider when deciding whether or not
to issue a citation – plays no part here.502 After all, there may be instances that justify
traveling over the speed limit or running a red light. Indeed, a red light might be
circumstantially irrelevant to questions of safety. While a human being might use his
discretion to weigh all factors bearing on an actual situation, a computer system will
not. It only functions on the basis of the rules provided, and those rules, in order to
apply in all cases, must deny individual circumstance. This is a case of achieving
perfect equality through perfect impersonality.503 Here the machine only acts
according to facts deemed relevant a priori, becoming thereby the truly faithful civil
servant, absolutely so.
500This amounts to a modern form of tax-farming because municipalities typically contract out these services in order to generate revenue. The fact that challenging these citations places very real burdens on ordinary citizens plays into the hands of these municipalities in many cases. Often, convenience figures most highly in such questions: will a person take time off from work to challenge a citation. The balance of power, which is a balance of convenience, tips in one direction in such cases. 501Cf. H. Dreyfus, What Computers Can’t Do: the Limits of Artificial Intelligence, New York, 1979 [1972] Although dated in parts, Dreyfus makes a number of useful arguments. 502H. Mintzberg, The Rise and Fall of Strategic Planning, New York, 1994, p. 224 503North, et al., ibid., fn. 244, p. 94, supra.
180
In point of fact, although red-light cameras might seem to be a minor affair or
limited case, it is clear that the use of technology to carry out tasks now performed by
human beings is expanding, not shrinking, and software, even now when artificial
intelligence lies somewhere in the future, is taking on greater responsibility.504 We
are reaching the moment when the idea of artificial moral agents or autonomous
artificial agents is becoming real. Thus, reliable, stable machines are likely to
become liable persons, capable of making moral choices on our behalf.505 An
algorithm, making choices impersonally on the basis of strict criteria, does by one
standard deliver truly equal treatment for all because everything is reduced to uniform
inputs: whether that kind of equality represents justice is doubtful because justice
typically involves judgments formed through the application of general principles to
actual circumstances, the discretionary moment. Chopra suggests that it may be
possible to punish software for unjust or erroneous choices, but punishing software
seems quite distinct from the idea that a real human being might be found liable for
wrongdoing. Surely, there is a significant distinction to be made between punishing
things and punishing people regardless of whatever argument can be advanced to
show that certain kinds of software qualify for legal personality: human beings, after
504The use of big data represents an empirical shift from identifying causality to identifying correlation. This would have its own implications, the more big data play a role in automating processes, such as identifying candidates for Internal Revenue Service audits. R. Satran, “IRS Data Web Snares Mostly Low- and Middle-Income Taxpayers,” U.S. News and World Report (May 1, 2013), (www.money.usnews.com/money/personal-finance/mutual-funds/articles/2013/05/01/irs-data-web-snares-mostly-low--and-middle-income-taxpayers); V. Mayer-Schönberger and K. Cukier, Big Data: A Revolution that Will Transform How We Live, Work, and Think, New York, 2013 505W. Wallach and C. Allen, Moral Machines: Teaching Robots Right from Wrong, Oxford, 2009; S. Chopra and L. White, A Legal Theory for Autonomous Artificial Agents, Ann Arbor, 2011
181
all, are not apps, and apps are not people.506 In any case, in some domains
automation effectively addresses problem of discretion posed by Davis, although it is
doubtful he would see that as a boon, given his views on “the extravagant version of
the rule of law.”507 As mentioned, new vistas for these and other technologies surely
loom over the horizon. Apart from the implications of technology for the potential
automation of more bureaucratic tasks, the very fact that some of these tasks can be
taken on by software does suggest that official role itself does not imply any organic
capacity for officials to serve as political actors. I argue, rather, that such capacities
inhere to the human beings occupying those roles, not the roles themselves.
Thompson suggests that officials have responsibility, not merely because they
are officials, but because they are persons. In other words, their status as human
beings means that they cannot be mere cogs in the machinery of government.508 I
agree with this insofar as it stresses the importance of a quality that transcends the
mere condition of employment. Occupying a position within a government agency
entails certain duties and functions, both implicitly and explicitly. That much is clear,
but it is not enough. It too easily collapses into a surrender of personal values to
those of the organization. One’s personhood is prior, and it means that, as human
beings, officials bring a quality that is more than mere service. They are not
automata or “living tools.” But personhood alone is insufficient, in my view. Nearly
anything can be a person, even software, if we follow Chopra’s reasoning.509 Instead,
506J. Larnier, You Are Not a Gadget, New York, 2010 507Davis, op. cit., p. 28ff. 508This, of course, is the implication of Taylor’s scientific management principles to government agencies. Taylor, op. cit. 509Chopra, op. cit., Chs. 1 and 5 are of interest here.
182
one’s status as a citizen provides a more relevant grounding on which to base an idea
that officials can exercise discretion as they see fit. This is because citizens are
members of the political community, particularly in democracies. As such, the
emphasis on citizenship highlights the connection to that community and to its laws,
particularly the foundational laws (leges imperii), constitutive of that community.
The political theory tradition offers two ways of conceptualizing bureaucrats as
political actors, duty-bound to exercise discretion. First, the magistracies as
understood by traditional thinkers from Plato through Machiavelli offer a way of
conceptualizing modern officials more powerfully, as citizens, who retain their moral
capacities as citizens.510 Second, protestant theorizing about the capacity of minor
magistrates to take action on the civic community’s behalf sheds light on how to
reconceptualize official duty in modern democratic polities.
Because individuals have citizenship prior to any role that they might take on,
citizenship offers a transcendent framework for justifying the exercise of discretion.
It also implies, contra Saint-Just, that becoming a bureaucrat does not mean the
abandonment of one’s status as a citizen.511 Thompson, of course, was correct to
emphasize that moral capacity is an essential quality of personhood, but this might
suggest no more than simple flight or prayer, withdrawal or passivity in the face of
injustice. Mere personhood is fundamentally private. One may simply go home in
the face of injustice as Socrates did when ordered by the Thirty to participate in the
510Thompson is critical of role itself because it overshadows the responsibility that attaches to individuals as persons. “Ascribing Responsibility,” and “Moral Responsibility of Public Officials: The Problem of Many Hands,” American Political Science Review 74.4 (Dec., 1980), pp. 905-16 511Saint-Just obviously understood the implication of citizens serving as government officials; for that reason, he insisted that they ceased to be citizens.
183
arrest of Leon.512 A robust conception of democratic citizenship, however, includes
among its essential qualities participation in sovereignty and the capacity for
action.513 Echoing Aristotle, who stressed the fact that citizens were distinguished
from other residents of a state by their capacity to participate in public offices,
Rousseau asserted that men were citizens “when they participate in sovereign
authority.”514 The participatory tradition, as we have seen in our discussion of the
Plato, Aristotle, Cicero, and Machiavelli, shows citizens holding office as active
members of the political community. Indeed, citizenship on this understanding is not
mere membership in a political community for census purposes, nor is it a passive
activity at all, although it is true that many citizens may not fully live their
citizenship. Even the citizen who does not participate remains potentially fully
active. And citizenship in this sense of activity, or, to echo Arendt’s notion, in the
sense of the vita activa, is in its very nature a kind of political liberty that echoes
ancient ideas.515 It differs from ancient ideas of liberty too. The fact that social status
itself no longer implies political limitations in the way that it clearly did for earlier
thinkers means that citizenship is in the present day a more broadly conceived
512Apology in H. Tredennick, ed., Plato: The Last Days of Socrates, Penguin Classics, Harmmondsworth, 1982 [1954], p. 65 Cf. Applbaum on “Pareto-Inferior Constraints,” op. cit., pp. 1502 513For the development of the modern idea of citizenship, see R. Brubaker, Citizenship and Nationhood in France and Germany, Cambridge, 1992. 514Politics 3.1, pp. 61-3 [1274b32ff.]; Social Contract, p. 93 (1.6) = Derathé, op. cit., p. 362, see also Rousseau’s fn. 6, ad loc., which rejects Bodin’s notion of citizenship and stresses the political nature of citoyen. 515Arendt, Human Condition; Constant, “The Liberty of the Ancients Compared with that of the Moderns,” in Fontana, op. cit., pp. 307-28; cf. O’Neill, op. cit., pp. 392-3: “Unshackling the bureaucracy from the rule of law need not be a prescription for a lawless bureaucracy.” Quotation from p. 393 The spectre of chaos, always invoked to justify bureaucratic servility, is ethereal as best.
184
political concept, theoretically speaking, at least.516 Therefore, the fact that
individuals take jobs within the bureaucracy of a democratic government need not
imply per se that they cease to be citizens first and foremost. This, of course, was the
theory that to some extent underpinned Jacksonian patronage.517 But we need not
enter completely into the merits or failures of such a system to acknowledge here that
citizenship itself comprehends as an essential quality the capacity to judge and to act.
One’s participation as a constituent member of the sovereign nation need not be
negated by the assumption of one’s role as a postman. I would argue that in terms of
earlier thinkers such as Cicero and Machiavelli, or Plato and Aristotle, officials were
seen first as citizens and second as magistrates. Thus was citizenship and magistracy
combined, the implication being that one depended on the other, each bearing on the
other. Obviously, this understanding contradicts the absolutist tradition that, since
Bodin, has seen members of government as servants of the sovereign, the logical
consequence of which was Saint-Just’s formulation to the effect that officials
516To be sure, political equality is partly an ideological pretense, partly a mythos to flatter ourselves. Cf. Tocqueville’s observation: “Dans un pays où il n’est pas impossible que le pauvre arrive à gouverner l’État, il est plus facile d’écarter toujours les pauvres du gouvernement, que dans ceux où l’espérance du pouvoir ne lui est pas offerte; l’idée de cette grandeur imaginaire, où il peut être appelé un jour, se place sans cesse entre lui et le spectacle de ses misères réelles. C’est un jeu de hazard où l’énormité du gain possible attache son âme en dépit des probabilities de la perte.” (emphasis added) L’Ancien Régime, p. 60 517The spoils system was controversial in the United States, although it was for a long time the method for staffing the government. The strongest arguments against it historically seemed to come from notions of efficiency that ultimately derived from economic and business rather than political and social considerations. C. Fish, The Civil Service and the Patronage, Harvard Historical Studies 9, Cambridge, 1920; W. Turn, “In Defense of Patronage,” and J. Pollock, “The Cost of the Patronage System,” Annals of the American Academy of Political and Social Science 189 (Jan., 1937), pp. 22-34
185
effectively ceased to be citizens.518 But his conception implies what he saw as
integral to citizenship: participation in sovereignty, a contradiction that had to be
resolved through absolute distinction between citizen and public servant. But, if we
deny the distinction, we have a basis for bureaucratic discretion that transcends role.
Apart from an official’s status as a citizen, there is a tradition in political
theory that his status as a magistrate also provides a basis for independent action,
contrary even to the wish of the sovereign. This tradition comes from protestant
resistance theory of the 16th century. Many strands gave rise to this tradition, ranging
from the elaboration of Roman civil law, ideas adumbrated vaguely by Calvin in his
Institutio Christianae Religionis, to the religious conflict, particularly following the
St. Bartholomew’s Day massacre in France, but these details need not detain us.519
Indeed, it is worth pointing out that Bodin’s Six Books of the Republic represents one
side of a debate about authority and obedience within the political community. In
many respects, Bodin and the Huguenots represent two sides of an argument about
518Not that this perspective has gone away completely: what else does it mean to speak of legislature and bureaucracy as a case of principal and agent, if not that the agent is some kind of other, functioning according to its own requirements. This kind of analysis calls for regulatory remedy, just as Saint-Just demanded. See, for example, McCubbins, M., et al., “Administrative Procedures as Instruments of Political Control, Journal of Law, Economics, & Organization 3.2 (Autumn, 1987), pp. 243-77 519H. Strohl, “Le droit à la résistance d’après les conceptions protestantes,” Revue d’histoire et de philosophie religieuses 10 (1930), pp. 126-44; R. Benert, Inferior Magistrates in Sixteenth-Century Political and Legal Thought, U. of Minn., dissertation, 1967; J. Franklin, ed., Constitutionalism and Resistance in the Sixteenth Century: Three Treatises by Hotman, Beza, & Mornay, New York, 1969 and Jean Bodin and the Rise of Absolutist Theory, Cambridge, 2009 [1973]; R. Kingdon, “Calvinism and Resistance Theory 1550-1580,” in J. Burns, ed., The Cambridge History of Political Thought 1450-1700, Cambridge, 2004 [1991], pp. 193-218 For the critical passages in Calvin, see H. Höpfl, ed., Luther and Calvin: On Secular Authority, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2006 [1991], pp. 82-3 (4.20.31-2)
186
the nature of the state and its relation to the subject, both influenced by the violence
taking place around them. While Bodin stressed stability, going so far as, on the one
hand, to recognize a theoretical right of magistrates to take action contrary to
instructions, on the other hand, to confine that right to the realm of theory in the
interest of avoiding chaos, theorists like the author of the Vindiciae contra tyrannos
sive de principis in populum populique in principem legitima potestate (Vindiciae)
argued that magistrates were the individuals whose office gave them a specific duty
on behalf of the community to resist sovereigns that behave unjustly (tyrannus
exercitio).520 It is to this theory of resistance that we now turn, Mornay’s Vindiciae
contra Tyrannos and Beza’s Right of Magistrates (Du droit des magistrats sur leurs
subiets) in particular.521
While there are distinctions to be made among officials, some being of the
court and directly dependent on the prince, others being created by the Estates or by
municipalities, but, in any case, not being of the court, the basic question answered by
this line of reasoning is whether or not magistrates or state officers may not only
engage in passive resistance to their princes, but even take positive steps to thwart his
520In writing of tyrants, theorists distinguished between usurpers, i.e., princes who had no legitimate title, and whom all were free to resist, from legitimate princes who by their actions (exercitium) became tyrants. Obviously, the latter category posed a thornier question when it came to who could resist and under what circumstance because these princes originally held title rightfully. 521The authorship of the Vindiciae is complicated and of no interest here. I will accept for the sake of convenience Mornay as the author. Franklin takes up the issue in his collection (pp. 138-40), and Kingdon briefly touches it at p. 212. See also Benert, p. 162, fn. 2. There is a Catholic resistance tradition as well, but that will not be the focus here. For an overview, see J. Salmon, “Catholic resistance theory, Ultramontanism, and the royalist response, 1580-1620,” in J. Burns, ed., The Cambridge History of Political Thought 1450-1700, Cambridge, 2004 [1991], pp. 219-53 The 1579 edition of Beza’s work is available through http://books.google.com
187
wishes. And, if a magistrate may so act, why? First, there is an important difference
between mere subjects and officials. This was not particularly novel. Calvin, who
had not fully worked out his allowance for magisterial resistance, cautioned that
private individuals were to suffer injustice and await God’s relief: “…we are not to
imagine that it is we ourselves who are called upon to inflict it (viz., vengeance on
unbridled tyranny). All that has been assigned to us is to obey and suffer. Here as
always, I am speaking about private persons.”522 In a similar vein, Beza was careful
to caution against opening the floodgates (ouvrir la porte à toutes malheureuses
seditions & conspirations) for anyone ordinary person to resist flagrant tyranny.523
Private persons (personnes du tout privées/aucun particulier) had no right “to use
force against a tyrant.”524 Resistance must be according “to one’s rank (selon son
degré).” Even Mornay, whose tracts most aggressively argued for resistance retains
the view that mere private persons could do no more than either leave or quietly pray
for God’s intervention because, as he reasoned, while magistrates were endowed with
the power to act (ius gladii), private individuals only had “the sword of the spirit.”525
We are not yet in a world where citizens compose a civic community participating in
sovereignty. To be sure, Hotman, Beza, and Mornay all argued on the basis of both
their reading of history and the comments on legitimacy afforded by the Digest that
522Institutio 4.20.31 = Höpfl, op. cit., p. 82; see too E. Barker, “A Huguenot Theory of Politics. The ‘Vindiciae Contra Tyrannos.’,” Proceedings of the Huguenot Society of London 14.1 (1930), pp. 37-61 523Kingdon observes that Huguenot resistance theory “was in no way democratic, for the general population, especially in the larger cities, had shown itself quite willing to help implement a policy of extermination (i.e., during the St. Batholomew’s Day massacre).” op. cit., p. 207 524Magistrates 6 in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 110 525Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 154ff.
188
princes held their power by virtue of the people seen as a collective entity contracting
with the prince, but this did not mean that, as individuals, subjects retained any
authority to behave in their own interests outside the sphere of private relations.526 A
private individual might engage in self-defense against another private individual,
but, once power had been conferred on the prince, an individual’s capacity as a
private man to revoke that act had ceased. Mornay’s illustration of the relationship
between state, magistrate, and ordinary people makes the point:
Now we are not speaking here of private individuals, who are not to be regarded as the basic parts of a community any more than planks, nails, and pegs are taken as the parts of a ship; or stones, beams, and mortar as the parts of a house. We are speaking rather of a province or a town, which is a part of a kingdom in the same way the prow, deck, and rudder are the parts of a ship, or the roof, walls, and foundations are the parts of a house. And we are also speaking of the magistrate who is in charge of that province or town….527
This appears to mean that private men, who in any case were not yet citizens in the
modern sense, are simply the raw material of which a political community is
composed. 528 It is the institutions or the magistrates that give the community its
form; it is the institutions or magistrates that give the ship its direction or the house,
its shape. If such a metaphor had the significance that Mornay clearly ascribed to it,
how could a subject do any more than remain passive in relation to those who acted
as rudders and prows? Private men could do no more than passively endure tyranny
526Digest 1.4.1 analyzes the emperor’s legitimacy thus: “…the populace commits to him and into him in its own entire authority and power, doing this by the lex regia which passed anent his authority.” It is possible, incidentally, to seen in the distinction between the people, taken collectively, and private individuals, taken individually, an idea that anticipates Rousseau’s distinction between the general will and private interest. 527Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 152 528On the various statuses held by persons before the full development of citizenship in France, see Brubaker, op. cit., pp. 35-9
189
or take flight.529 After all, a man could only answer his particular calling: “[e]ach
individual is bound to serve God in the vocation to which he is called.”530
Furthermore, according to this analysis, subjects were effectively under the
protection of government officials. In other words, magistrates and princes and the
Estates were interpreted as guardians of subjects. Their duties were cast in terms of
the Roman legal concept of tutela, much as Cicero himself has argued in his own
work. Recall that tutela meant that the guardian was to act in the interest of his ward.
Cicero had suggested that proper government entailed magistrates having a particular
competence and duty to protect the interest of ordinary citizens in a legitimate
republic.531 Thus, argues Mornay, magistrates themselves have a particular charge
“to protect the people’s rights and privileges and make sure that the king himself
commits no crime against the people nor neglects his duty towards them.”532 Like
guardians, magistrates were bound by a special duty to protect the interests of their
wards.533 Note that wards, being the incompetent, the youth, or women, historically
needed guardians in Roman law precisely because they themselves lacked the
competence in law necessary to administer their properties or protect their interests.534
That principle, transferred to the conception of magisterial office, meant that
529“Private persons, finally, have no excuse to obey sacrilegious commands. But beyond this they have no right whatsoever to take up arms....” Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 158 530Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 154 531See, Ch. 3, p. 98, and for the comparison with the vilicus, see p. 99, supra. 532Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 162 533Cf. Magistrates 6 in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 112, which speaks of the duty of magistrates “to safeguard those within their care.” 534Cf. Beza’s argument for the Estates to intervene when he declares, “And it would surely be monstrously unfair to deny to an entire nation what equity concedes to private persons such as minors, women, and the simpleminded….” Magistrates 6 in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 125
190
magistrates too had a special duty by virtue of their office to protect ordinary
subjects. In comparing ordinary people to wards, Mornay himself explained thus:
A ward cannot bring an action except through his guardian who acts as its author, even though the ward is the real principal and the guardian is taken as the principal only insofar as he promotes the welfare of the ward. In like manner the people cannot act except through the officers to whom they have transferred their authority and power…. The people, I say, have given their sword to these persons for that purpose and have submitted to their governance and care.535 (emphasis added)
This conception of the private individual as mere ward dependent on the protection of
his magistrate, it seems to me, is transformed once we see magistrates and citizens as
persons fundamentally on the same footing. In other words, the distinction between
the magistrate and the private man is effaced once democratic theory insists that the
government and the people are the same. Ours is no longer a political arrangement
that limits each individual to his “vocation” or confines him to act in according to his
social rank. Citizens, in fact, partake of sovereignty and have, in a sense, moved up
the ranks vis-à-vis their officials: they are no longer merely private. In any case,
these 16th century thinkers argued that, if anyone were in a position to act on a
community’s behalf, it was the kingdom’s officials, not its subjects.
But there was more justification for magistrates to take action than their status
as guardians looking out for the community’s interests. Magistrates are bound to
uphold law by virtue of their oath, an oath sworn, according to Beza, to the
sovereignty itself. The distinction here is important: Beza is not emphasizing an oath
sworn to a particular king; he is arguing that the oath itself binds the magistrate to the
state itself. Indeed, it is this sworn obligation that further distinguishes the magistrate
535Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, pp. 195-6
191
from the private individual, who swears no such oath.536 Mornay effectively echoes
this point when he emphasizes that French magistrates swore an oath to the kingdom,
taken to be the people as a whole, not to the actual monarch.537 This oath, according
to Benert, made magistrates agents of the people and guardians of their interests.538
In effect, it gave them a duty-bound position independent of and joint with the prince,
but faithful to sovereign power itself, i.e., the regime and the community. Mornay
himself concludes that in dire cases magistrates are obligated by virtue of office even
to use force against the king. This duty stems not merely from their position as
guardians of the ordinary people, but also from the oaths sworn to uphold the laws,
which were understood not merely as positive or civil, but also as divine, natural, and
fundamental laws. Failure to act, in fact, means sharing in a wicked monarch’s evil-
doing. One may not merely, Mornay argues, turn away.539
The looming question, of course, is what specifically justifies a magistrate’s
turning against his king. We understand the grounds for his capacity to act, but what
legitimates magisterial resistance? Violations of divine law offered one answer. The
conflict between the demands of higher and man-made law has always posed a
problem, as it does today when trying to decide whether someone is a legitimate
whistle-blower or merely a criminal.540 This was the theme of the Antigone by
536Magistrates 6 in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 112 537Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 164 538op. cit., p. 176; cf. Calvin’s emphasis on oath when he says that magistrates should not connive in the misdeeds of their monarchs. Institutio 4.20.31 in Höpfl, op. cit., p. 83 539Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, pp. 190-1 540As Constant grandly puts it, “ Nothing justifies the man who lends his assistance to a law which he believes iniquitous.” On the Sovereignty of the People in Fontana, op. cit., p.181
192
Sophocles. Would Creon’s demand that Polyneices not be buried be obeyed?
Antigone feels that religious scruples trump the king’s desires and makes a symbolic
act of burial. Creon suffers the consequences of his edict, perhaps to remind us that
divine law takes precedence. So long as the divine remained something real and part
of political life, divine law too could be a fact to weigh when sorting out duties owed
to the state. As was mentioned above, private citizens in the tradition under
consideration were not justified in resisting the monarch actively. If a king were
manifestly wicked or, in other words, a tyrant in act, their only legitimate choices
were flight or prayer. Magistrates, as guardians and partakers of sovereign power,
however, could act and were at times duty-bound to do so. While there was broad
agreement among Christian thinkers that divine law superseded the manmade, what
anyone could do about conflicts between the two was difficult to decide. Although
Calvin argued without much elaboration that “we must never allow ourselves to be
diverted from our obedience to the one to whose will the desires of every king must
be subjected….,” he seemed, nevertheless, to think that disobedience would be
nothing more than passive resistance, even if that were to involve martyrdom: “I
know that kings are not prepared to tolerate any defiance and that their answer is a
messenger of death….”541 Beza argued that the community even could not obligate
itself to a manifestly irreligious tyrant, suggesting as well that a government that
541Institutio 4.20.32 in Höpfl, op. cit., pp. 83-4 The statement about martyrdom in the service of God is particularly noteworthy given the fact that Calvin had the radical reformer, Michael Servetus, burnt at the stake in 1553, an act which Beza himself went on to defend. On Servetus, see R. Bainton, Hunted Heretic, Boston, 1953
193
acted against natural and divine law was worthy of repudiation and condemnation.542
It is worth pointing out, of course, that it was not for just anyone to take action in
such cases, but rather for “those so authorized to act,” presumably meaning virtually
any public official, but not private persons.543 Similarly, Mornay had said that one
might resist kings who by engaging in unholy acts or prohibiting holy ones showed
themselves “enemies of God and man”, but this was not a right of ordinary folk.
Rather, this was a duty of those who possessed authority, meaning, naturally,
magistrates or even other bodies such as the Estates.544
These considerations meant that magistrates had an affirmative duty to act.
Unlike ordinary subjects, who could leave the community, if circumstances became
unbearable, magistrates could not simply go home. In the face of his monarch’s
wrong-doing, Mornay argued, conspiring with the tyrant made them liars, conniving
made them traitors, and failing to defend the community made magistrates themselves
tyrants.545 This special duty to act was an aspect of office precisely because
magistrates were seen as guardians and protectors of the people. They and the
monarch together shared responsibility to look out for the interests of their wards. As
such, they had a duty emanating from their degré to take action, not merely to behave
542Magistrates 6 and 9 in Franklin, Constitutionalism, pp. 127-9 and 134-5 Whether or not a tyrant is manifest is important. Our authors are conscious about the problem of errors of judgment. Thus, Mornay warns “[w]here God has not spoken with his own mouth or through His prophets in extraordinary fashion, we must be extremely circumspect and sober.” (emphasis added) This is a very high bar indeed when considering whether or not to engage in resistance. Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 156; cf. Beza, Magistrates 6 in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 108 543Magistrates 6 in Franklin, Constitutionalism, pp. 124 and 127 544Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, pp. 154 and 190 545Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, p. 193
194
like stage-actors, as Mornay sarcastically remarked.546 In any case, it was their
position as magistrates per se that theorists like Mornay and Beza took as legitimating
their capacity to act on behalf of the community, in the defense of positive, man-made
law as well as divine, natural, or fundamental law that existed prior to the workings of
the state itself.
If now we think of what this line of reasoning offers in the case of modern
bureaucrats, we can conclude that bureaucrats themselves have a positive capacity to
take action in the interests of justice. Justice, as mentioned earlier, has no meaning, if
not an idea outside of what positive man-made law can provide. I have not ventured
to say what the content of that law is, but it does seem that magistrates, or, in modern
terms, bureaucrats, can refer to their own, personal convictions as a basis for deciding
such questions. At a minimum, they may refer to fundamental law (leges imperii)
which establishes the state itself, as a means of determining what justice is. Indeed,
this is precisely the implication of any American official’s oath to the United States
constitution. It is not an oath to an agency, or an administration, or a legislature, or
an Office of General Counsel. Rather, it is an oath to the Constitution, which can
mean nothing other than the idea that an individual official must ultimately rely upon
his own judgment as to what constitutes justice on the basis of that document, as it is
prior to any institution for which he works. Two concepts stressed by the Huguenot
theorists highlight this point: oath and tutela or guardianship. They found that the
oath sworn by an official meant that he was duty-bound to respond to whatever
violated that oath. To be sure, he should not be rash, nor, perhaps, should he act
546Vindiciae in Franklin, Constitutionalism, pp. 191-2
195
without consulting those whose opinions might be significant. Moreover, there was
room for error, as Mornay had warned. Nevertheless, the official ultimately had to
respect the meaning of his oath, if it was not to be reduced to mere ceremonial.
Furthermore, magistrates themselves – and this echoes Cicero’s understanding – were
guardians of the people’s interests.
It is worth pausing on the matter of guardians as protectors of interests for a
moment. For it is not immediately clear why the simple fact of holding office might
justify this position. To be sure, there is the argument that magistrates in some sense
participated in sovereignty. But more than that, there is the very idea of knowledge.
Magistrates, in fact, might be in a better position than private individuals to know the
circumstances. This is precisely the significance of the notion, conceded by Bodin
himself, that magistrates should advise monarchs as to the implications of their
decisions. Unless magistrates were in a position to know something relevant, why
would anyone think that there advice could have any bearing on the case? Yet, this is
the salient point: magistrates have the knowledge and judgment which would
undergird any magisterial claim to independent judgment of facts. Those
circumstances are often no different today. Indeed, they are all the more relevant,
both as a source of power, as Weber feared, and as a potential source of redress and
judgment. In other words, modern bureaucrats are well-placed in a way that private
individuals, even citizens, are not, to act as a corrective to poor decision-making and
policy implementation precisely because they might actually know the circumstances.
Thus the police officer on the beat. For him, context is everything because he may
understand both the law and the facts.
196
The modern concept of citizenship only strengthens the position of the
magistrate. Constant correctly noted that ancient and modern liberty differed. It is
important not to be misled by ancient concepts that no longer have a relationship to
modern circumstances. The ancient civis or polites participated directly in
government, but at the price of comparatively little privacy. Constant overstates the
case, but he is right in noting that modernity renders the citizen an utterly private
person who effectively delegates the quotidian substance of his political rights to
someone else in exchange for a liberty of non-interference. This is a theory of
republicanism. But it does not eliminate the fundamental fact that citizens are the
basis of power, even when they delegate. That is to say, they have something to
delegate, which is their sovereign capacity. This participation in sovereignty, which
the Huguenots saw as something integral to magisterial office, is inalienable, even if
citizens today can and do delegate it for periods of time, as when they elect
legislators. Legislators do not act as sovereigns by nature, but sovereigns by
delegation because sovereignty itself resides within the nation and the individuals
who compose it. In institutional terms, legislatures function on behalf of the
sovereign, but are not inherently sovereign, although legislators as people must surely
retain some part of it. I would argue that bureaucrats too, as modern citizens, retain
this dimension of their personality. On the one hand, tasks are delegated to them, as a
subordinate corps, by legislatures or by the executives, but in any case they remain
themselves citizens, participating in sovereignty. If one wants to think in Rousseau’s
terms, they compose part of that body that produces the general will and collectively
they can even check excesses of the general will because of their corporate interest
197
(volonté de corps). This means that individual officials retain, for purely political
reasons that have a long history, some power to exercise discretion on the basis of
their own judgment.
A body of ethical thinking about bureaucratic discretion currently falls back
upon the idea that roles are decisive when it comes to determining an official’s
discretion. This is partly justified on the implicit grounds that to argue otherwise
would invite any and all willy-nilly to second-guess legislatures and second-guess
legitimate officials. The fundamental question to be answered there is whether or not
this is important. To be sure, if we think that the people have stepped into the shoes
of the monarch, it seems natural to assume that their will should be put into action.
Yet, this, in fact, is not the correct way to see the matter. Modern democracies are
not monarchies of the people. They are systems of mass participation: the people and
the government are the same. This was never the situation with monarchies. With
monarchy, it was people versus the prince. Once we accept that the people and the
government are one, we should look to political theory that acknowledges such a
tradition, one in which magistrates are also citizens. The ancient republics offered
this, and they understood that magistrates operated according to their own judgment
on behalf of the civic community. Where the ancient republic fail to inform us is in
the social dimension: they did not function according to our understanding of social
and political equality. But we do, and that means that all citizens can expect their
fellows to occupy official roles. The Huguenot theorists suggested, rightly, that
magistrates were duty-bound to defend the civic community because of their oaths
and their status as guardians of the people. This situation has only been strengthened
198
as we have seen that citizens themselves, who participate in sovereignty as an a priori
birthright, now hold office. As a result, there is a certain logic and justification from
political theory that modern bureaucrats judge the justice of matters and take action
accordingly. When we think that in the United States officials swear their oaths to the
Constitution, it is difficult to imagine those oaths having any substance if not in this
very sense: that they will judge the rightness of an act or policy on the basis of their
own considered opinions. It strikes me that this is the implication of the participatory
or republican tradition in political theory as opposed to the absolutist one.
199
Chapter 6
Conclusion
As we have seen, absolutism has dominated thinking about the relationship
between sovereign and bureaucrat. Bodin’s theory, expanded by Rousseau, among
others, forged for democratic governments the reins whereby the people could take
the bridle of state and direct its administration wheresoever it pleased. To think
otherwise has consistently represented a threat to popular will however expressed. To
be sure, this theme has undergone variation. Although he did not originate the idea,
Rousseau posited a distinction between decision and execution. In political terms,
this was cast as a bifurcation between legislation and execution, then politics and
administration, and more recently principal and agent, but, despite linguistic changes,
the distinction has remained fundamentally the same, the idea consistently reflecting
an almost primordial division of labor between officials as slaves and citizens as
masters. I do not quibble with the logic that a sovereign has some right to expect
administration to honor its decisions. But we have often lost sight of the fact that this
is fundamentally an absolutist legacy, not a democratic one. Indeed, it is this
perspective that in the democratic context has presented bureaucrats as members of
some body, alien and separate, even, inimical, to the political community, a view that
can be held only if one overlooks the fact that bureaucrats themselves are actually
citizens and members of that community.
What the absolutist tradition has pushed aside for too long is what I will here
call a republican tradition that looked upon magistrates as citizens holding office and
acting on the basis of personal convictions that in some measure were bound by the
200
condition of sociality. As we have seen, this tradition acknowledged a vibrant,
sometimes parlous political community where citizens took turns ruling and being
ruled, but ultimately in which office-holders themselves implemented policy as they
judged actual circumstances. Huguenot resistance theory stressed the particular duty
of officials that came from their position as guardians of the people. Stressing the
Roman concept of tutela, they argued that only officials were in a position to counter
the acts of a ruler who acted wickedly. Moreover, their oaths gave them additional
justification to act on behalf of the people because they were bound by them to
uphold the law, civil, foundational, natural, or divine. But this was not a call for
action under just any circumstances or according to any whim. Dire circumstances,
such as tyranny or violation of higher law, called for active resistance.
This literature incorporated an important distinction. Neither the ancients nor
the Huguenots were advocating democracy in modern terms. These were men
concerned with the elites, those socially qualified to hold office. Private individuals,
as Beza or Mornay emphasized, could only pray for God’s intervention or flee an
intolerable situation. Cicero for his part hardly envisioned humbler folk such as the
tradesmen and hirelings of their betters, stepping into the shoes of office. Indeed,
ancient magistrates typically were in a position to rely on inferiors in the execution of
their duties, and as bare a state as Athens provided government slaves to help citizen-
magistrates carry out their functions. If Bodin advocated a logic that saw magistrates
more as government servants whose will must bend to the sovereign’s, the Huguenots
pushed back, suggesting that magistrates were persons possessed of real power to be
exercised on behalf of the political community. Modernity, however, presents new
201
circumstances because in democracies citizens themselves are conceptually equal,
each ultimately partaking of sovereignty, and each empowered to act within the
political community. This differs fundamentally from ancient democracy.
Arguments over the relative democratic quality of the Roman Republic do not, for
example, claim that the ordinary man, despite the right to vote in assembly or to
attend contiones, was fully equal to the nobilis. Indeed, Cicero himself made it clear
that his ideal Republic was one in which the best sorts of men held office on behalf of
their social inferiors: moral, social, and political quality tend all to reflect each other
in his Republic. Citizen status was different for ancients than it was for moderns.
But that difference is important because now, as a matter of democratic ideology, all
citizens are equal before the law and able to act politically. It is when we think of
modern officials as modern citizens who retain their capacity to act that we can
combine this Republican tradition of magistracy with the modern tradition of
citizenship. In other words, as I have argued, citizen officials have more than the
kind of passive discretion that comes from the absolutist tradition, meaning that they
can do more than pray for God’s intervention or resign from office when they would
otherwise be impelled to act. In fact, their citizen status gives officials, regardless of
rank, a capacity to act that is integral to their prior condition of citizenship.
This is theory. Sociology and other disciplines, not to speak of simple
common sense, show that human beings are not mere slaves, no matter what Weber
suggested would be the bureaucrat’s professional devotion to duty. But, to be fair,
Weber surely knew that himself; it is a bit of a caricature to pretend as if he believed
that his self-consciously idealized concept was some absolute reflection of reality or
202
an “iron law” that would allow any observer to know in advance how any individual
bureaucrat might behave. His fear that bureaucracy itself was a threat shows that he
knew reality did not always mean that bureaucrats were self-effacing instruments of
their political masters. I hasten to point out the fact of someone’s subordination has
never warranted his total obedience, whether he was a client of another man or a
slave. Roman comedy, for example, is rife with examples of the slave who is smarter
than his master and capable of outwitting him. But mere empiricism is not the same
thing as justification. The fact that people do not always do what they are told is not
the same as saying, as I do, that disobedience might be integral to their status and
integral to their condition within the polity. Constant put the matter well when he
argued that the total subordination of a lesser official’s will to his superior’s was in
some sense antithetical to liberty because
…if you prescribe for the officials of authority the absolute duty of an implicit and passive obedience, you let loose upon human society instruments of arbitrariness and oppression which any blind or furious power may unleash at will.547
In his chapter “On the Responsibility of Subordinates (agents inférieurs),” Constant
made two important observations.548 First, if subordinate officials could be
punishable, they must then have responsibility. In other words, they must have some
capacity to act on the basis of their own judgment if they are to be held accountable.
Otherwise, they could simply point to the accountable superior for all wrong-doing.
Second, even if some might choose to act, the majority will not. He well understood
547Principles of Politics (11) in Fontana, op. cit., p. 245 = Roulin, op. cit., p. 1146 This obviously anticipates Weber’s fear and is a regular theme among those who worry about the tension between bureaucracy and democracy. 548Principles of Politics (11) in Fontana, op. cit., pp. 244-50 = Roulin, op. cit., pp. 1146-53
203
that the argument frequently trotted out to the effect that allowing for official
judgment and discretion would turn everything into a chaos would actually not be the
general result. If common sense suggests that people generally do not always follow
every order to the letter, it also suggests that most of the time many are perfectly
happy to do just that. It was not, after all, a crowd of informants who came rushing
forward to reveal wrong-doing at Abu Ghraib. Most people, in fact, prefer not to take
action or put themselves at risk. This has often been precisely the problem: the
unwillingness of those capable of knowing and acting actually to do so. The danger
has always been surfeit of passivity, not action.549
Indeed, the issue of action or active resistance is perhaps all the more acute in
areas where the legislature or the people cannot, in fact, monitor the government
effectively. Oversight, after all, is a critical device by which the sovereign ensures
that its will is executed.550 Where secrecy prevails, but oversight does not, officials,
if anyone, are most apt to be in a position to know and to act. Knowledge is the
critical matter. Although her book about Congressional oversight is no longer
completely accurate, Zegart makes a compelling argument that the balance of power
between the watcher and the watched, in this case, the intelligence community, is
549Vitoria’s discussion of when a soldier may refuse orders is interesting because he clearly believes that only certain types of men are in a position to judge the justness of a war, but he is also unsatisfied with the possibility that this might allow a man to engage in moral wrong-doing on the authority of another. On the Law of War 22-6 in A. Pagden and J. Lawrance, edd., Vitoria: Political Writings, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2003 [1991], pp. 307-9 550This corresponds to Keane’s concept of monitory democracy. But that idea falls apart the more the public or its agents lack access to information. Keane, op. cit.
204
effectively broken.551 Members of Congress lack the incentives, members of the
public lack the means, and the intelligence community, as she argues, holds most of
the cards. This is a situation that evokes the idea of regulatory capture, in which
those who regulate depend on the regulated for all or most relevant information.
Most recently, ProPublica and This American Life published the results of their
investigation into the defective oversight conducted by the Federal Reserve Bank of
New York.552 Their findings showed that regulators repeatedly succumbed to the
pressures of having to maintain good relations with the banks in order to gain a
minimum of information pertinent to their duties. The fact that an aggressive
approach towards the banks could jeopardize these relationships and potentially cut
off access to that very information meant that they, as, one might argue, a prudential
calculation, softened their approach. This is precisely the problem with regulatory
capture, and it describes the problems that arise because of the imbalance of power
between the overseen who know and the overseers who do not. Imagine how the
discovery process during pre-trial would function if the courts could not penalize the
recalcitrant! It strikes me that these are the very cases where officials cannot fall
back on their “roles,” which might imply passivity, but must behave as citizens on the
political community’s behalf. The act of resignation, for example, is largely
meaningless if the person resigning is a petty bureaucrat, and it is not surprising that
advocates of this option often cite examples of senior figures who resigned. But it
551Zegart, Eyes on Spies; on the role of secrecy in democracies and its relationship to political responsibility, see K. Robertson, Public Secrets: A Study in the Development of Government Secrecy, New York, 1982 552J. Bernstein, “Inside the New York Fed: Secret Recordings and a Culture Clash,” ProPublica, September 26, 2014, www.propublica.org
205
was their status as senior figures that gave their act meaning: the act spoke because of
who they were, just as it would be silent because of who minor figures would be. It
is important to note here that in advocating resistance I speak of individual officials,
not agencies, which must, as collective bodies created by the state, remain
subordinate. In both the case presented by Zegart and the one presented by
ProPublica and This American Life, this means that citizen officials must fall back on
an understanding of duty grounded in something higher, such as foundational law. In
other words, they appeal to justice before the political community.
There are two significant gaps in my argument, and they represent areas
calling for further research. I have confined myself to arguing that officials as
citizens have the capacity to take action on behalf of “higher purposes.” Obviously,
this echoes the concept of the whistleblower, although I am proposing here an
argument for that kind of person on the basis of the republican tradition in political
theory. In a sense, it transcends the particular legislative concept of the
whistleblower. But the matter is more complicated. First, there is the question of
abused discretion. Once officials have discretion, we cannot take for granted that it
will always be used for noble purposes or to defend the community. A corrupt
official may help relatives, take bribes, coerce the weak.553 Second, one must wonder
whether or not officials can be inculcated with the kind of mental equipment that
might guide them in the use of their discretion. This is somewhat akin to the question
of whether or not wisdom can be taught. Thus we might ask whether or not it is
553Deciding exactly what corruption is can be a problem. See Scott, op. cit. I might argue that, if we simply observed corrupt systems in sociological terms, we might, then, only see systems of redistribution. Using a moralizing category like “corruption” can overdetermine our analysis and cloud the issue.
206
sufficient for officials to behave ethically if they have no idea why. Is the appearance
just as good as the substance?
While not a perfect answer to the problem of abused direction, Constant offers
what might be the only one. Officials who use discretion must always face the courts,
or the political community for justification. They must be open about their acts and
the reasons for them, and the courts or the political community on that basis can make
its judgment of the matter. I would also argue that corruption is not necessarily an
obvious problem. A supposed benefit of modernity is that Western states have to
some extent been “emancipated” from society. In other words, impersonality and
rationality are usually upheld as positive achievements in the West precisely because
these imply equality of all citizens before the law. But I do not take for granted that
equality and justice go hand in hand. They may, but fairness is not justice. Fairness
implies a leveling out, a consideration for one’s political status purely, a kind of legal
fungibility of persons that does not take into account who they are or their actual
circumstances. To the question of fairness, there are merely citizens. Justice, on the
other hand, is the matching of principles to individuals; it is sensitive to context in a
way that mere implementation of rules is not.
It is striking the degree to which arguments against corruption appear to take
for granted the economic good that comes from its elimination.554 Often the issue is
not that corruption per se is a problem, but that, if American business, for example,
must eschew bribery as a method for securing a contract, then that method should not
554Rose-Ackerman, op. cit.; A. Wrage, Bribery and Extortion: Undermining Business, Governments, and Security, Westport, 2007
207
be available to anyone.555 In other words, the issue is not corruption, but securing a
level playing field. There is no particular reason, however, why economic good
should take precedence over any other good, such as, the political good or the social
good. Economic good, being material and measurable, can be seen and felt and
judged by objective criteria in a way that is difficult, to say the least, for political and
social good. But we should not lose sight of the fact that political good and social
good have their own merits too. An argument can be made that a person might
achieve justice appropriate to his situation by bribing an official to obtain redress
rather than by suffering the equal treatment required by the law. Context does
matter. One cannot judge circumstances before they are known, which is precisely
how and why rules often fail, only to be corrected or amended after acts of injustice
accumulate sufficiently to attract attention, and this is why technology, which
functions entirely on the basis of rules specified in advance, does not necessarily
deliver justice.
Nonetheless, there is no denying that the pervasive perception of corruption
within government can undermine the faith of citizens in their government. Diogenes
was reported to have said upon seeing an official being led off for some theft that it
was merely a case of “the big thieves leading off the little one.”556 One suspects that
a similar sentiment underlies some of the statistics and comments reported in Almond
and Verba regarding attitudes of Mexican and Italian citizens towards their
555Lurking in the background is the idea of merit, that the meritorious rise to the top, and those who lack merit sink to the bottom. The idea of meritocracy has its own grim implications. See, M. Young, The Rise of the Meritocracy, Harmondsworth, 1963 [1958] 556Diogenes Laertius 6.45
208
government.557 On the other hand, reliance upon ascriptive criteria for the allocation
of government services also might go together with richer social networks.558 I do
not know if that is a social good or not, but I would suggest that its consideration
would be part of an argument about abused discretion. At any rate, the suggestion
here has not been to do away with law or regulation. The political community creates
these directly or through its deputies. But in those realms where an official makes
choices that are proscribed or the result of pure discretion, Constant’s point that the
case may ultimately be made before a jury is practical. The Huguenot theorists
seemed to envision that minor officials acting on behalf of the community would put
their case to that community or God. Modernity calls for putting a case for higher
justice before the political community, that is, the court of public opinion, or the real
courts.559
557G. Almond and S. Verba, Civic Culture, Boston, 1965 [1963], pp. 70, 72, and 77-8, tables 3.2-3 558My point in raising this question is not to suggest that we should work to reproduce Jacksonian democracy in America. The past is the past. But it does have relevance when considering states in Africa that are not fully emancipated from society. Merely to label government in Bamako as corrupt simply ignores the actual circumstances on the ground and denies that each state may undergo its own developmental trajectory. Consider M. van Vliet, “Weak Legislatures, Failing MPs, and the Collapse of Democracy in Mali,” African Affairs 113/450 (2014), pp. 45-66 It is worth noting too, as Chabal and Daloz do, that colonizers also played a role in fostering a culture of “corruption” in Africa. P. Chabal and J.-P. Daloz, Africa Works: Disorder as Political Instrument, Oxford, 1999 These points skillfully illustrated in Hampaté Bâ’s famous novel, L’étrange destin de Wangrin. 559As a separate matter, I would argue that historically acts that we now refer to as bribery were endemic and natural to democratic systems, particularly where states were still embedded in their societies. And I would emphasize Kelly’s suggestive observation that bribery in the late Antique period was a means for ordinary people to by-pass social networks to gain services. It often does not occur to critics of Africa, but bribery itself may represent a way to gain government services without having to rely upon a powerful patron, one path, perhaps, towards the West’s much-vaunted bureaucratic impersonality. For an interesting argument about social and political
209
As I mentioned, another matter that deserves full consideration is the question
of how to get officials to do the right thing. To put it differently, is it possible to
teach ethics?560 Implicit in this question is the matter of appearance and substance:
does it matter if officials know the right thing, so long as they do it? To illustrate this,
one might consider the problem of using one’s position within a bureaucracy for
personal gain. It is possible to list a number of acts that are illegal. An official
cannot conduct private business using his government computer. He cannot use a
government vehicle to take his wife to the opera. He cannot use his position to solicit
free meals from potential contractors. Rules proscribing these particular behaviors
may be laid out in advance, and officials can be trained to observe the particular rules.
It is, therefore, possible to have an official who will scrupulously avoid letting
potential contractors pay for his meals, but he may not have any particular idea why
this is a problem beyond the fact of its being a rule. If confronted with a situation not
covered by a rule, he may not have the abstract principles to reason through the
appropriateness of various courses of action open to him. This is the distinction
between training and education that Ricks discussed in his critique of the American
Army.561 We may produce a cadre of officials who are very good at scrupulously
following the rules, but powerless to do the right thing when faced with unanticipated
choices. Alternatively, we may, as in fact we do, find that officials will follow rules
and procedure regardless of the justice of the outcome.
patterns in Africa, see Chabal and Daloz, op. cit. Their book should be read in conjunction with J.-F. Bayart et al., The Criminalization of the State in Africa, Oxford, 1999. 560For an approach, see T. Piper, et al., Can Ethics be Taught?, Boston, 1993 561Ricks, op. cit.
210
The question of mere habituation versus true knowledge is a concern of long
pedigree. I would argue, in particular, that Polybius in identifying the value of
superstition (deisidaimonia) pointed the way for later thinkers who conceived of
religion as a means to instill moral value and obedience within the political
community. What is superstition but the fearful – one thinks of the Arabic word,
taqiya or “fearful reverence” in this context – dedication to rules and procedure.562 It
has long been pointed out that superstition itself is a kind of thoughtlessness. But this
is precisely the problem. There is an intrinsic relationship between fearful scruple
and rule. A person must be satisfied that the rule, or the process, contains the relevant
criteria for addressing relevant situations. Yet, rules themselves, because they are
fundamentally reductionist, either encourage us to ignore the particulars that do not
fit, or, when we cannot fit the matter to the rules, they leave us in a kind of helpless
confusion, particularly as we do not have the underlying principles at our command.
In other words, without the substantial reasons why there are particular rules and
processes, we are often left without the equipment to respond as circumstances
require. In a sense, the situation not covered by the rules is like a miracle that defies
explanation. I have stated the matter starkly, although I understand that real life has
more nuance, and the capacity to muddle through is always there. But, if we consider
that it is better to have an understanding of the principles underlying the rules, then
we see that the project of inculcating values in our officials is different in nature, and,
perhaps, in difficulty than merely habituating them to desired behavioral patterns.
Indeed, this is precisely what Saint-Just had in mind when he argued that reason
562Rendered as Gottesfurcht in A. Wahrmund, Handwörterbuch der neu-arabischen und deutschen Sprache, v. 1, Beirut, 1974, p. 339b
211
could discover all the laws needed to ensure that officials served as mere cogs
administering policy like gears in a watch. And he surely wanted them to function so
out of a fearful certainty that punishment would follow any infraction. I think that we
do not want mindless cogs, but whether they can or should be educated with the
necessary political values as opposed to mere rules of conduct poses a number of
problems that merit study in their own right. They are beyond the scope of the
present discussion, which is why I have not addressed them. Constant’s suggestion
that the courts might be the only means to address questions of discretion may seem
somewhat unsatisfying, but it also might be the best that can be offered. Similarly, it
is certainly possible that habituation might be the best to be hoped for. In any case,
education is obviously a matter that deserves study and consideration when pondering
how officialdom might be equipped to exercise discretion.
In Catch-22, Captain Yossarian refuses to conduct any more bombing
missions. Publicly his comrades criticize him, privately they draw inspiration from
his act or even seek his help to do the same. Eventually, he argues at one point,
“[s]omeone had to do something sometime. Every victim was a culprit, every culprit
a victim, and somebody had to stand up sometime to try to break the lousy chain of
inherited habit that was imperiling them all.”563 My argument in many ways is
captured in this quotation. It is often the easiest thing in the world to content oneself
with the thought that someone else is responsible and to feel justified in following the
rules because they are the given. Absolutist doctrine demands as much of
563J. Heller, Catch-22, London, 2013 [1955], Ch. 39, p. 391The flipside of this is the Chaplain’s revelation on the technique of “protective rationalization”: “Anybody could do it; it required no brains at all. It merely required no character.” Ch. 34, p. 351
212
bureaucrats, and to some extent we have often allowed that doctrine to be clothed in
democratic garb because the notion that the laws of a legislature should be obeyed has
been paramount. I do not discount the value of that basic premise, but, as I have
argued, we have allowed this idea, inherited from the world of monarchs, to obscure
the tradition afforded us by republican thinkers. Now, if we take Keane’s idea of
monitory democracy seriously, it is clear that it depends for its health on the flow of
information. But what is to be done when information is not available, or the
interests do not exist to monitor the government? These are the instances, and they
are real, where we should hope that officials take their oaths seriously, or take their
own principles seriously, to act on behalf of the political community. What I have
attempted to show is that political theory offers a sound, traditional basis for
incorporating such a concept of official duty into democratic communities. If we
were to educate officials regarding the political values of those communities, I would
hope that it would include consideration of that tradition. From time to time, only the
officials are in a position to act.
213
Bibliography
CTHPT – Cambridge Texts in the History of Political Thought
LCL – Loeb Classical Library OCT – Oxford Classical Text
Pléiade – Bibliothèque de la Pléiade
Almond, G., and S. Verba, Civic Culture, Boston, 1965 [1963]
Annas, J., and R. Waterfield, edd., Plato: Statesman, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2005
[1995]
Ansell-Pearson, K., ed., Nietsche: On the Genealogy of Morality, CTHPT,
Cambridge, 2004 [1994]
Anscombe, G., “Modern Moral Philosophy,” Philosophy 33 (1958), pp. 1-19
Anter, A., “L’histoire de l’État comme histoire de la bureaucratie,” Trivium 7 (2010),
pp. 2-15
Appiah, K., Experiments in Ethics, Cambridge, 2008
Applbaum, A., Ethics for Adversaries: the Morality of Roles in Public and
Professional Life, Princeton, 1999
Arendt, H., The Human Condition, New York, 1959;
On Revolution, London, 1990 [1963];
Eichmann and the Holocaust, Harmondsworth, 2006;
“Thinking and Moral Considerations: A Lecture,” Social Research 38.3
(1971), pp. 417-46
Aristotle, Constitution of Athens, see Everson (CTHPT);
Eudemian Ethics, see Waterfield;
Nicomachean Ethics, see Crisp;
214
Politics, see Everson (CTHPT)
Arnaoutoglou, I., Ancient Greek Laws, London, 1998
Aron, R., Les étapes de la pensée sociologique, Paris, 1967
Badian, E., “The scribae of the Roman Republic,” Klio 71.2 (1989), pp. 582-603
Baehr, P., “The ‘Iron Cage’ and the ‘Shell as Hard as Steel’: Parsons, Weber, and the
Stahlhartes Gehäuse Metaphor in the Protestant Ethic and the Spirit of
Capitalism,” History and Theory 40.2 (May, 2001), pp. 153-69
Bainton, R., Hunted Heretic, Boston, 1953
Bandy, A., ed., Ioannes Lydus: On Powers or the Magistracies of the Roman State,
Philadelphia, 1983
Barker, E., “A Huguenot Theory of Politics. The ‘Vindiciae Contra Tyrannos.’,”
Proceedings of the Huguenot Society of London 14.1 (1930), pp. 37-61
Baron, H., “Machiavelli: The Republican Citizen and the Author of ‘the Prince’,” The
English Historical Review 76.299 (Apr., 1961), p. 217-53
Bauman, Z., Modernity and the Holocaust, Ithaca, 1991
Bawn, K., “Political Control Versus Expertise: Congressional Choices about
Administrative Procedures,” American Political Science Review 89.1 (Mar.,
1995), pp. 62-73
Bayart, J.-F., et al., The Criminalization of the State in Africa, Oxford, 1999
Beard M., and M. Crawford, Rome in the Late Republic, Ithaca, 1985
Bell, D., The Cult of the Nation in France, Cambridge, 2003 [2001]
Benert, R., Inferior Magistrates in Sixteenth-Century Political and Legal Thought, U.
of Minn., dissertation, 1967
215
Bernstein, J., “Inside the New York Fed: Secret Recordings and a Culture Clash,”
ProPublica, September 26, 2014, www.propublica.org
Bettenson, H., trans., Livy: Rome and the Mediterranean, Penguin Classics,
Harmondsworth, 1983 [1976]
Beza, see Franklin
Beza, T., Du droit des magistrats sur leurs subiets, 1589, (http://books.google.com/)
Blok, A., “Variations in Patronage,” Sociologische Gids 16 (1969), pp. 365-78
Bodin, see Franklin (CTHPT), Mairet (French), and McRae
Le Bohec, Y., The Imperial Roman Army, New York, 1989
Bonfantini, M., ed., Niccolò Machiavelli: Opere, Milan, (no date), La Letteratura
Italiana: Storia e Testi, v. 29
Borkowski, A., Textbook on Roman Law2, Oxford, 2002 [1997]
Bosher, J., French Finances 1770-1795: from Business to Bureaucracy, Cambridge,
2008 [1970]
Breasted, J., Ancient Records of Egypt, v. 2, Urbana, 2001 [1906]
Brink, C., and F. Walbank, “The Construction of the Sixth Book of Polybius,”
Classical Quarterly 4.3/4 (Jul.-Oct., 1954), pp. 97-122
Brubaker, R., Citizenship and Nationhood in France and Germany, Cambridge, 1992
Burns, J., ed., The Cambridge History of Political Thought 1450-1700, Cambridge,
2004 [1991]
Burns, T., The Management of Innovation, Oxford, 1961
Bryce, J., Modern Democracies, London, 1929
Burke, J., Bureaucratic Responsibility, Baltimore, 1986
216
Bywater, I., trans., The Rhetoric and the Poetics of Aristotle, New York, 1984 [1954]
Caldwell, C., “Coaxers and coercers discover common ground,” Financial Times,
March 1, 2013
Caldwell, L., The Administrative Theories of Hamilton and Jefferson, New York,
1988 [1944]
Calhoun, G., Athenian in Politics and Litigation, Studia Historica 7, Rome, 1964
[1913]
Calvin, see Höpfl
Cancik, H., and H. Schneider, edd., Brill’s New Pauly, Leiden, 2002-10
Caplan, B., The Myth of the Rational Voter, Princeton, 2007
Carpenter, D., The Forging of Bureaucratic Autonomy, Princeton, 2001
Cato, see Harper (LCL)
Cesarani, D., Becoming Eichmann: Rethinking the Life, Crimes, and Trial of a “Desk
Murderer”, Cambridge, 2004
Chabal, P., and J.-P. Daloz, Africa Works: Disorder as Political Instrument, Oxford,
1999
Chamayou, G., “A chacun son arme: drone et kamikaze, jeu de miroirs,” Le monde
diplomatique, April 2013, p. 3
Chandler, A., The Visible Hand: The Managerial Revolution in American Business,
Cambridge, 1977
Choung, W., Control Mechanisms Over Bureaucratic Power Expansion and a
Tentative Model for the Comparative Study of Bureaucracy, Temple
University, dissertation, 1981
217
Chopra, S., and L. White, A Legal Theory for Autonomous Artificial Agents, Ann
Arbor, 2011
Cicero, M., ad Familiares, see Williams (LCL);
Commonwealth, see Zetzel (CTHPT) and Powell (OCT);
De Amicitia, see Falconer (LCL);
De Senectute, see Falconer (LCL);
De Domo Sua, see Watts (LCL);
In Vatinium, see Gardner (LCL);
In Verrem, see Greenwood (LCL);
Letters, see Shackleton-Bailey;
On Duties, see Griffin (CTHPT);
On the Laws, see Zetzel (CTHPT) and Powell (OCT);
Pro Archia, see Watts (LCL);
Pro Murena, see Lord (LCL);
Pro Rabirio, see Hodge (LCL)
Cicero, Q., see Purser (OCT)
Cobb, R., and C. Church in “Social Mobility,” Past & Present 32 (Dec. 1965), pp. 8-9
Cobban, A., Rousseau and the Modern State, Hamden, 1964;
A History of Modern France, v. 1, Harmondsworth, 1984 [1957]
Cohler, A., et al., edd., Montesquieu: The Spirit of the Laws, CTHPT, Cambridge,
2004 [1989]
Condorcet, see Pons
218
Conly, S., Against Autonomy: Justifying Coercive Paternalism, Cambridge, 2014
[2013]
Connor, W., The New Politicians of Fifth-Century Athens, Princeton, 1971
Conover, K., Bribery in Classical Athens, Princeton University, dissertation, 2010
Constant, see Fontana (CTHPT) and Roulin (Pléiade)
Crisp, R., ed., Aristotle: Nicomachean Ethics, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2006 [2000]
Crook, J., Law and Life of Rome, Ithaca, 1978 [1967]
Culham, P., “Archives and Alternatives in Republican Rome,” Classical Philology
82.2 (Apr., 1989), pp. 100-15
Dale, H., The Higher Civil Service of Great Britain, Oxford, 1941
Damon, C., “Sex. Cloelius, Scriba,” Harvard Studies in Classical Philology 94
(1992), pp. 227-50
David, S., “The Primacy of Internal War,” in S. Neuman, ed., International Relations
Theory and the Third World, New York, 1998, pp. 77-101
Davis, K., Discretionary Justice: a Preliminary Inquiry, Urbana, 1973 [1969]
Delbrück, H. Warfare in Antiquity, Lincoln, 1990 [1920]
Demosthenes, see Murray (LCL)
Denhardt, K., and B. Catron, “The Management of Ideals: A Political Perspective on
Ethics,” Public Administration Review, 49.2 (Mar.-Apr., 1989), pp. 187-93
Derathé, R., et al., edd., Jean-Jacques Rousseau: Oeuvres Complètes, v. 3, Pléiade,
Paris, 1966
Diels, H., ed., Theophrasti Characteres, OCT, Oxford, 1909
219
Dobel, J., “Personal Responsibility and Public Integrity,” Michigan Law Review 86.6
(May, 1988), pp. 1450-65;
Bureaucratic Integrity, Baltimore, 1999
Dorn, W., “The Prussian Bureaucracy in the Eighteenth Century, Political Science
Quarterly 46.3 (Sep. 1931), pp. 403-23
Douglas, P., “Improvement of Ethical Standards in the Federal Government:
Problems and Proposals,” Annals of the American Academy of Political and
Social Science 280 (1952), pp. 149-57
Dover, K., Popular Greek Morality in the Time of Plato and Aristotle, Oxford, 1974
Dreyfus, H., What Computers Can’t Do: the Limits of Artificial Intelligence, New
York, 1979 [1972]
van Duffel, S., “Sovereignty as a Religious Concept,” Monist 90.1 (2007), pp. 126-43
Duncan-Jones, R., Money and Government in the Roman Empire, Cambridge, 1998
Dunning, W., “Jean Bodin on Sovereignty,” Political Science Quarterly 11.1 (Mar.,
1896), pp. 82-104
Dyck, A., A Commentary on Cicero, De Officiis, Ann Arbor, 1996
Echols, E., “The Roman City Police: Origin and Development,” Classical Journal
53.8 (May, 1958), pp. 377-85
Eckstein, A., Mediterranean Anarchy, Interstate War, and the Rise of Rome,
Berkeley, 2009
Ehrenberg V., and A. Jones, edd., Documents Illustrating the Reigns of Augustus and
Tiberius, Oxford, 1949
220
Ehmke, H., “‘Delegata Potestas Non Potest Delegari:’ A Maxim of American
Constitutional Law,” Cornell Law Quarterly 47 (1961-2), pp. 50-60
Eisenhardt, K., “Agency Theory: An Assessment and Review,” Academy of
Management Review 14.1 (1989), pp. 57-74
Elshtain, J., Sovereignty, God, State, and Self, New York, 2008
Emge, C., “Bürokratisierung,” Kölner Zeitschrift für Soziologie und
Sozialpscyhologie (1950-1), pp. 179-95
Everson, S., ed., Aristotle: The Politics and The Constitution of Athens, CTHPT,
Cambridge, 1996 [1984]
Falconer, W., trans., Cicero: De Senectute, De Amicitia, De Divinatione, v. 20, LCL
154, Cambridge, 1964 [1923]
al-Fawzan, S., Concise Commentary on the Book of Tawhid, Riyadh, 2009 [2005]
Faulkner, R., “The Installation of the Vizier,” Journal of Egyptian Archeology 41
(Dec., 1955);
A Concise Dictonary of Middle Egyptian, Oxford, 1981 [1962]
Ferrari, G., ed., Plato: The Republic, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2004 [2000]
Finer, H., “Better Government Personnel,” Political Science Quarterly 51.4 (Dec.,
1936), pp. 569-99;
“Administrative Responsibility in Democratic Government,” Public
Administration Review 1.4 (1941), pp. 335-50
Finer, S., The History of Government: Ancient Monarchies and Empires, v. 1,
Oxford, 1997
Finley, M., Politics in the Ancient World, Cambridge, 2002 [1983]
221
Fish, C., The Civil Service and the Patronage, Harvard Historical Studies 9,
Cambridge, 1920
Fitzhugh, G., Cannibals All! or Slaves Without Masters, Cambridge, 1988 [1960]
Fontana, B., Constant: Political Writings, Cambridge, CTHPT, 2006 [1988]
Foster, B., trans., Livy: History of Rome, v. 4, LCL 191, Cambridge, 1963 [1926]
Foster, B., Before the Muses, v. 2, Bethesda, 1996
Fowler, H., trans., Plutarch’s Moralia, v. 10, LCL 321, Cambridge, 1950 [1936]
Fracaro, P., “Accensi,” Athenaeum 5 (1927), pp. 133-46
Franklin, J., Jean Bodin and the Rise of Absolutist Theory, Cambridge, 2009 [1973]
Franklin, J., ed., Constitutionalism and Resistance in the Sixteenth Century: Three
Treatises by Hotman, Beza, & Mornay, New York, 1969;
Bodin: On Sovereignty, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2008 [1992]
Fraenkel, E., Horace, Oxford, 1980 [1957]
Friedrich, C., “The Continental Tradition of Training Administrators in Law and
Jurisprudence,” The Journal of Modern History 11.2 (Jun. 1939), pp. 129-48;
“Public Policy and the Nature of Administrative Responsibility,” Public
Policy 1 (1940), pp. 3-24
Fronto, see Haines (LCL)
Furneaux, H., ed., The Annals of Tacitus, Oxford, 1968 [1883]
Gallego, J., “El Patronazgo rural en la democracía ateniense,” Studia Historica:
Historia Antigua, 27 (2009), pp. 163-75
Garaudy, R., ed., Les orateurs de la révolution française, Paris, 1939
Gardiner, A., Egyptian Grammar, Oxford, 1964 [1927]
222
Gardner, R., trans., Cicero: The Speeches, v. 12, LCL 309, Cambridge, 1966 [1958]
Gargarin, M., and D. MacDowell, edd., Antiphon & Andocides, The Oratory of
Classical Greece, v. 1, Austin, 1998
Gellius, see Rolfe (LCL)
Gelzer, M., Caesar: Politician and Statesman, Cambridge, 1968
Gewen, B., “Becoming Eichmann by David Cesarani; The Everyman of Genocide,”
New York Times, May 14, 2006
Gibb, H., and J. Kramers, edd., Concise Encyclopedia of Islam, Leiden, 1995 [1953]
Gluckman, M., Politics, Law, and Ritual in Tribal Society, New Brunswick, 2009
[1965]
Goldsworthy, A., The Roman Army at War: 100BC – AD 200, Oxford, 1996
Goodnow, F., Politics and Administration: A Study in Government, New York, 1967
[1900]
Goodsell, C., “Administration as Ritual,” Public Administration Review, 49.2 (1989),
pp. 161-6
Gouldner, A., Patterns of Industrial Bureaucracy, New York, 1964 [1954];
“Industrial Sociology: Status and Prospects: Discussion,” American
Sociological Review, 13.4 (1948), pp. 396-400
Goyard-Fabre, S., “L’idée de souveraineté du peuple et le ‘libéralisme pur’ de
Benjamin Constant,” Revue de Métaphysique et de Morale 81.3 (Jul./Sep.
1976), pp. 289-327
Grajetzki, W., Court Officials of the Egyptian Middle Kingdom, London, 2009
223
Grant, M., trans., Tacitus: The Annals of Imperial Rome, Penguin Classics,
Harmondsworth, 1985 [1956]
Graves, R., Suetonius: The Twelve Caesars, Penguin Classics, London, 2003 [1957]
Greenwood, L., trans., Cicero: The Verrine Orations, v. 2, LCL 293, Cambridge, 1960
[1935],
Gregory, B., The Unintended Reformation, Cambridge, 2012
Griffin, M., and E. Atkins, edd., Cicero: On Duties, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2008 [1991]
Gulick, L., “Politics, Administration, and the ‘New Deal’,” Annals of the American
Academy of Political and Social Science 169 (Sep., 1933), pp. 55-66
van Gunsteren, H., The Quest for Control: A Critique of the Rational-Central-Rule
Approach in Public Affairs, London 1976.
Haines, C., trans., The Correspondence of Marcus Cornelius Fronto, v. 2, LCL 113,
Cambridge, 1957 [1920]
Handford, S., trans., Sallust: The Jugurthine War/The Conspiracy of Catiline,
Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1985 [1963]
Hamilton, W., trans., Phaedrus and Letters VII and VIII, Penguin Classics,
Harmondsworth, 1977 [1973]
Hampaté Bâ, A., L’étrange destin de Wangrin ou Les Roueries d’un interprète
africain, Paris, 1973
Han Fei, see Watson
Hannig, R., Großes Handwörterbuch Ägyptisch-Deutsch, Mainz, 1995
Harl, K., Coinage in the Roman Economy: 300 B.C. to A.D. 700, Baltimore, 1996
224
Harmon, M., and J. White, “’Decision’ and ‘Action’ as Contrasting Perspectives in
Organization Theory,” Public Administration Review 49.2 (Mar.-Apr., 1989),
pp. 144-52
Harper, W., trans., Marcus Porcius Cato on Agriculture, LCL 283, Cambridge, 1960
[1934]
Hartman, M., “Benjamin Constant and the Question of Ministerial Responsibility in
France, 1814-1815,” Journal of European Studies 6 (1976), pp. 248-61
Hegel, see Wood
Held, D., Models of Democracy, Stanford, 1996
Heller, J., Catch-22, London, 2013 [1955]
Henderson, J., Aristophanes: Lysistrata, Oxford, 1990 [1987]
Herbst, J., States and Power in Africa, Princeton, 2000
Hiller, E., ed., Anthologia Lyrica, Leipzig, 1890
Hobbes, see Tuck
Hodge, H., trans., Cicero: The Speeches, LCL 252, Cambridge, 1966 [1927]
Hoekstra, K., “Early Modern Absolutism and Constitutionalism,” Cardozo Law
Review 34 (2013), pp. 1079-98
Höpfl, H., ed., Luther and Calvin: On Secular Authority, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2006
[1991],
Horkheimer, M., The Eclipse of Reason, London, 2004 [1947]
Horwill, H., Modern American Usage, Oxford, 1946
Huber, J., and C. Shipan, Deliberative Discretion?, Cambridge, 2002
Ionescu, G., ed., The Political Thought of Saint-Simon, Oxford, 1976
225
Ismard, P., “Public Slavery, Politics and Expertise in Classical Athens.” Center for
Hellenic Studies, Research Bulletin 1, no. 2 (2013)
Isocrates, see Nordin (LCL)
Jacob, O., Les esclaves publics à Athènes, New York, 1979 [1928]
Jardin, A., Tocqueville: Oeuvres, v. 1, Pléiade, Paris, 1991
Jones, A., “The Roman civil service (clerical and sub-clerical grades),” Journal of
Roman Studies 39 (1949), pp. 38-55;
The Later Roman Empire 284-602, v. 1, Baltimore, 1986
Joseph, R., Democracy and Prebendal Politics in Nigeria, Cambridge, 1987
Kahn, P., Political Theology: Four New Chapters on the Concept of Sovereignty,
New York, 2011
Kantorowicz, E., “Mysteries of State: An Absolutist Concept and Its Late Mediaeval
Origins,” Harvard Theological Review 48.1 (Jan., 1955), pp. 65-91
Karl, B., “The American Bureaucrat: A History of a Sheep in Wolves’ Clothing,”
Public Administration Review 47 (Jan.-Feb., 1987), pp. 26-34
Keane, J., The Life and Death of Democracy, New York, 2009
Kelly, C., Ruling the Later Roman Empire, Cambridge, 2004
Kenny, A., trans., Aristotle: The Eudemian Ethics, Oxford World’s Classics, Oxford,
2011
Kingdon, R., “Calvinism and Resistance Theory 1550-1580,” in J. Burns, ed., The
Cambridge History of Political Thought 1450-1700, Cambridge, 2004 [1991],
pp. 193-218
226
Kingsley, J., Representative Bureaucracy: An Interpretation of the British Civil
Service, Yellow Springs, 1944
Kiser, E., and Y. Cai “War and Bureaucratization in Qin China: Exploring an
Anomalous Case,” American Sociological Review 68.4 (Aug., 2003), pp. 511-
39
Klosko, G., The Development of Plato’s Political Theory, Oxford, 2006
Kluge, F., and A. Götze, Etymologisches Wörterbuch der deutschen Sphrache, Berlin,
1953
Knapp, R., Invisible Romans, London, 2011
Koestermann, E., Cornelius Tacitus: Annalen, v. 1, Heidelberg, 1963
Kupiec, A., and M. Abensour, edd., Saint-Just: Oeuvres Complètes, Paris, 2012
Laks, A., “The Laws,” in C. Rowe and M. Schofield, The Cambridge History of
Greek and Roman Political Thought, Cambridge, 2005 [2000], pp. 258-92
Lamb, W., trans., Plato: Laches, Protagoras, Meno, Euthydemus, v. 2, LCL 165,
Cambridge, 1977 [1924]
Larnier, J., You Are Not a Gadget, New York, 2010
Lassman, P., and R. Speirs, Weber: Political Writings, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2010
[1994]
Levitan, D., “The Responsibility of Administrative Officials in a Democratic
Society,” Political Science Quarterly 61.4 (Dec., 1946), pp. 562-98
Lewis N., and M. Reinhold, edd., Roman Civilization, Sourcebook I: The Republic,
New York, 1966 [1951]
Lichtheim, M., Ancient Egyptian Literature, vv. 1-2, Berkeley, 1975-6
227
Liddell, H., and R. Scott, edd., A Greek-English Lexicon, Oxford, 1983 [1843]
Livy, see Bettenson (Penguin), Ogilvie (Penguin), Radice (Penguin), de Sélincourt
(Penguin),
Long, A., and D. Sedley, edd., The Hellenistic Philosophers, v. 2, Cambridge, 1992
[1989]
Lord, L., trans., Cicero: The Speeches, v. 10, LCL 324, Cambridge, 1964 [1937]
Lynch, C., Niccolò Machiavelli: Art of War, Chicago, 2003
Machiavelli, The Prince, see Skinner;
Discourses, see Mansfield
Art of War, see Lynch
MacDowell, D., The Law in Classical Athens, Ithaca, 1978
MacIntyre, A., After Virtue, Notre Dame, 2003 [1981]
MacMullen, R., Corruption and the Decline of Rome, New Haven, 1988
Mairet, G., ed., Jean Bodin: Les six livres de la République, Paris, 1993
Mannheim, K., Man and Society in an Age of Reconstruction, New York, 1940
Mannori, L., and B. Sordi, “Science of Administration and Administrative Law,” in
D. Canale et al., edd., A History of the Philosophy of Law in the Civil Law
World, 1600-1900, (A Treatise of Legal Philosophy and General
Jurisprudence, v. 9), New York, 2009, pp. 225-61
Mansfield, H., “Hobbes and the Science of Indirect Government,” American Political
Science Review 65.1 (Mar., 1971), pp. 97-110;
“On the Impersonality of the Modern State: a Comment on Machiavelli’s Use
of Stato,” American Political Science Review 77.4 (Dec., 1983), pp. 849-57
228
Mansfield, H., and N. Tarcov, trans., Niccolò Machiavelli: Discourses on Livy,
Chicago, 1998
Marchant, E., trans., Xenophon: Memorabilia and Oeconomicus, v. 4, LCL 168,
Cambridge, 1965 [1923]
Maritain, J., Man and the State, Chicago, 1951
Matheson, R., The Shrinking Man, in G. Wolfe, ed., American Science Fiction: Four
Novels 1953-1956, Library of America, New York, 2012, p. 585ff.
Mayer-Schönberger, V., and K. Cukier, Big Data: A Revolution that Will Transform
How We Live, Work, and Think, New York, 2013
McCubbins, M., et al., “Administrative Procedures as Instruments of Political
Control, Journal of Law, Economics, & Organization 3.2 (Autumn, 1987), pp.
243-77
McGregor, “Great Paradox of Citizenship and Public Personnel Administration,”
Public Administration Review 44 (1984), pp. 126-35
McKenzie, L., “Rousseau’s Debate with Machiavelli in the Social Contract,” Journal
of the History of Ideas 43.2 (Apr./Jun., 1982), pp. 209-28
McRae, K., ed., Jean Bodin: The Six Bookes of a Commonweale, Cambridge, 1962
Meiggs, R., and D. Lewis, edd., A Selection of Greek Historical Inscriptions, Oxford,
1980 [1969]
Mélonio, F., ed., Alexis de Tocqueville: l’ancien régime et la révolution, Paris, 1988
Merton, R., “Bureaucratic Structure and Personality,” Social Forces 18.4 (1940), pp.
560-8
229
Metz, A., “Die Entstehungsgeschichte der römischen Stenographie,” Hermes 66.1
(Jan., 1931)
Michalski, R., Creon’s Secretaries: Theories of Bureaucracy and Social Order in 18th
and early 19th Century Prussia, U. of Michigan, dissertation, 2009
Midgley, M., “The Origin of Ethics,” in Singer, ed., A Companion to Ethics, Oxford,
2000, pp. 3-13
Millar, F., “Political Character of the Classical Roman Republic 200-151 BC,”
Journal of Roman Studies 74 (1989), pp. 1-19;
The Roman Republic in Political Thought, Hanover, 2002
Millett, P., “Patronage and its avoidance in classical Athens,” in A. Wallace-Hadrill,
ed., Patronage in Ancient Society, London, 1989, pp. 15-47
Mintzberg, H., The Rise and Fall of Strategic Planning, New York, 1994
Mistretta v. United States, 488 US 361
Mitchell, L., and P. Rhodes, “Friends and Enemies in Athenian Politics,” Greece &
Rome 43.1 (Apr., 1996), pp. 11-30
Moe, T. “An Assessment of the Positive Theory of ‘Congressional Dominance’,”
Legislative Studies Quarterly 12.4 (Nov., 1987), pp. 475-520
Mommsen, T., “De apparitoribus magistratuum Romanorum,” Rheinisches Museum
für Philologie 6 (1848), pp. 1-57
Montesquieu, see Cohler
Monypenny, P., “The Control of Ethical Standards in the Public Service,” Annals of
the American Academy of Political and Social Science 297 (1955), pp. 98-104
Mornay, see Franklin
230
Morstein-Marx, F., The Administrative State, Chicago, 1957
Morstein-Marx, R., “Publicity, Popularity and Patronage in the ‘Commentariolum
Petitionis’,” Classical Antiquity 17.2 (Oct. 1998), pp. 259-88
Moyle, J., Imperatoris Iustiniani Institutionum Libri Quattuor, Oxford, 1903
Muehlhauser, L., and L. Helm, “Intelligence Explosion and Machine Ethics,”
Machine Intelligence Research Institute (October 01, 2014),
www.intelligence.org/files/IE-ME.pdf; and in A. Eden et al., edd., Singularity
Hypotheses: A Scientific and Philosophical Assessment, Berlin, 2012, pp.
101-26
Murray, A., trans., Demosthenes: Private Orations, v. 6, LCL 351, Cambridge, 1964
[1935]
Nelson, B., The Idea of Usury: From Tribal Brotherhood to Universal Otherhood,
Chicago, 1969 [1949]
Nettl, J., “The State as a Conceptual Variable,” World Politics 20.4 (Jul., 1968), pp.
559-92
Neuman, S., ed., International Relations Theory and the Third World, New York,
1998
Nichols, B., An Introduction to Roman Law, Oxford, 1992 [1962]
Nicolet, C., “Cicéron, Platon et le vote secret,” Historia: Zeitschrift für Alte
Geschichte 19.1 (Jan., 1970), pp. 39-66
Nietzsche, F., see Ansell-Pearson (CTHPT)
Nippel, W., “Policing Rome,” Journal of Roman Studies 74 (1984), pp. 20-9
Nisbet, R., ed., Cicero: In L. Calpurnium Pisonem Oratio, Oxford, 1975 [1961]
231
Niskanen, W., Bureaucracy and Representative Government, New Brunswick, 2007
[1971]
Noonan, J., Bribes, New York, 1984
Nordin, G., trans., Isocrates, v. 2, LCL 229, Cambridge, 1962 [1929]
North, D., et al., Violence and Social Orders, Cambridge, 2009
Oakley, S., A Commentary on Livy: Books VI-X, vv. 2-3, Oxford, 2005
Oakeshott, M., “Rationalism in politics,” in Rationalism in politics and other essays,
Indianapolis, 1991, pp. 5-42
Ober, J., Mass and Elite in Democratic Athens, Princeton, 1989
Ogilvie, R., trans., Livy: The Early History of Rome, Penguin Classics,
Harmondsworth, 1987 [1960];
A Commentary on Livy: Books 1-5, Oxford, 1984 [1965]
O’Leary, R., The Ethics of Dissent: Managing Guerilla Government, Washington,
2006
Olson, S., ed., Aristophanes: Acharnians, Oxford, 2002
O’Neill, T., “Liberal Constitutionalism & Bureaucratic Discretion,” Polity 20.3
(Spring, 1988), pp. 371-92
O’Toole, L., “Doctrines and Developments: Separation of Powers, the Politics-
Administration Dichotomy, and the Rise of the Administrative State,” Public
Administration Review 47.1 (Jan.-Feb., 1987), pp. 17-25
Pagden, A., and J. Lawrance, edd., Vitoria: Political Writings, CTHPT, Cambridge,
2003 [1991]
Parker, R., Miasma, Oxford, 1996 [1983]
232
Paton, W., trans., Polybius: The Histories, vv. 2, 3, 5, and 6, LCL 128, 137-8, and
160, Cambridge, 1979 [1922-33]
Pettit, P., Republicanism: A Theory of Freedom and Government, Oxford, 1999
Peretz, D., “The Roman Interpreter and his Diplomatic and Military Roles,”
Zeitschrift für alte Geschichte 55.4 (2006), pp. 451-70
Perrin, B., trans., Plutarch’s Lives, v. 8, LCL 100, Cambridge, 1959 [1919]
Piper, T., et al., Can Ethics be Taught?, Boston, 1993
Placido, D., and C. Fornis, “Evergetismo y relaciones clientarles en la sociedad
anteniense del siglo IV a.C.,” Dialogues d’histoire ancienne (37.2) 2011, pp.
19-47
Plato, Laws, see Saunders (Penguin);
Meno, see Lamb (LCL);
Phaedrus, see Hamilton (Penguin);
Republic, see Ferrari (CTHPT);
Statesman, see Annas (CTHPT)
Plutarch, Lives, see Perrin (LCL), Scott-Kilvert (Penguin), and Warner (Penguin);
Precepts, see Fowler (LCL)
Poggi, G., The Development of the Modern State: A Sociological Introduction,
Stanford, 1978
Polanyi, K., The Great Transformation: The Political and Economic Origins of Our
Time, Boston, 2001
Pollock, J., “The Cost of the Patronage System,” Annals of the American Academy of
Political and Social Science 189 (Jan., 1937), pp. 29-34
233
Polybius, see Paton (LCL)
Pons, A., ed., Condorcet: Esquisse d’un tableau historique des progrès de l’esprit
humain, Paris, 1988
Porter, T., Trust in Numbers, Princeton, 1996
Postgate J., Early Mesopotamia, London, 1994
Potter, D., “Holding Court in Republican Rome,” American Journal of Philology
132.1 (Spring 2011), pp. 59-80
Powell, J., M. Tulli Ciceronis de Re Publica, OCT, Oxford, 2006
Purcell, N., “The apparitores: a study in social mobility,” Papers of the British
School in Rome 51 (1983), pp. 125-73
Purser, L., ed., M. Tulli Ciceronis Epistulae, v. 3, OCT, Oxford, 1902
Quinlan, M., “Ethics in Public Service,” Governance 6 (1997), pp 538-44;
“Just Intelligence: Prolegomena to an Ethical Theory,” in P. Hennessy, ed.,
The New Protective State: Government, Intelligence, and Terrorism, London,
2007, pp. 123-41
Radice, B., trans., Livy: Rome and Italy, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1982
Raflaub, K., “Democracy, Oligarchy, and the concept of the ‘Free Citizen’ in Late
Fifth-Century Athens,” Political Theory 11.4 (Nov., 1983), pp. 517-44
Rawls, J., A Theory of Justice, Cambridge, 1999 [1971]
Rawson, E., Cicero: A Portrait, Ithaca, 1983
Reynolds, L., ed., C. Sallusti Crispi Catilina, Iugurtha, Historiarum Fragmenta
Selecta, Appendix Sallustiana, OCT, Oxford, 1991
234
Ricks, T., The Generals: American Military Command from World War II to Today,
New York, 2012
Riggs, F., “Introduction: shifting meanings of the term ‘bureaucracy’,” International
Social Science Journal/Revue international des sciences sociales 31.4 (1979),
pp. 563-84
Ritter, A., and J. Bonadellia, edd., Rousseau’s Political Writings, New York, 1988
Robertson, K., Public Secrets: A Study in the Development of Government Secrecy,
New York, 1982
Rolfe, J., trans., The Attic Nights of Aulus Gellius, vv. 1-3, LCL 195, 200, and 212,
Cambridge, 1960-1 [1927]
Rousseau, see Ritter and Derathé (Pléiade)
Rose-Ackerman, S., Corruption and Government, Cambridge, 1999
Roth, G., and C. Wittich, edd., Max Weber: Economy and Society, Berkeley, 1978
Roulin, A., ed., Benjamin Constant: Oeuvres, Pléiade, Paris, 1957
Rowe, C., and M. Schofield, edd., The Cambridge History of Greek and Roman
Political Thought, Cambridge, 2005
Ryan, A., On Politics: A History of Political Thought from Herodotus to the Present,
vv. 1-2, New York, 2012
Saint-Just, see Kupiec
Saint-Simon, see Ionescu
Saller, R., Personal Patronage under the Early Empire, Cambridge, 2002;
235
“Patronage and friendship in early Imperial Rome: drawing the distinction,”
printed in A. Wallace-Hadrill, Patronage in Ancient Society, London, 1989,
pp. 49-62
Sallust, see Handford (Penguin)
Salmon, J., “Catholic resistance theory, Ultramontanism, and the royalist response,
1580-1620,” in J. Burns, ed., The Cambridge History of Political Thought
1450-1700, Cambridge, 2004 [1991], pp. 219-53
Sandel, M., Liberalism and the Limits of Justice, Cambridge, 1998
Satran, R., “IRS Data Web Snares Mostly Low- and Middle-Income Taxpayers,” U.S.
News and World Report (May 1, 2013),
(www.money.usnews.com/money/personal-finance/mutual-
funds/articles/2013/05/01/irs-data-web-snares-mostly-low--and-middle-
income-taxpayers)
Saunders, T., trans., Plato: Laws, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 2004 [1970]
Saxonhouse, A., “Athenian Democracy: Modern Mythmakers and Ancient
Theorists,” Political Science and Politics 26.3 (Sep., 1993), pp. 486-90
Schlaifer, R., “Greek Theories of Slavery from Homer to Aristotle,” Harvard Studies
in Classical Philology 47 (1936), pp. 165-205
Schmitt, C., Political Theology, Chicago, 2005 [1985];
The Concept of the Political, Chicago, 2007 [1995]
Schmidt, S., et al., edd., Friends, Followers, and Factions: A Reader in Political
Clientalism, Berkeley, 1977
236
Schopp, R., “Verdicts of Conscience: Nullification and Necessity as Jury Responses
to Crimes of Conscience,” Southern California Law Review 69 (1995-6), pp.
2039-116
Schumpeter, J., Capitalism, Socialism and Democracy, New York, 1975 [1942]
Scott, J., Comparative Political Corruption, Englewood Cliffs, 1972
Scott-Kilvert, I., Plutarch: The Rise and Fall of Athens, Penguin Classics,
Harmondsworth, 1970 [1964];
Plutarch: Makers of Rome, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1981 [1965]
Scullard, H., From the Gracchi to Nero, London, 1977 [1959];
Scipio Africanus: Soldier and Politician, Ithaca, 1970
Sealey, R., “The Origins of ‘Demokratia’,” California Studies in Classical Antiquity 6
(1973), pp. 253-95
The Justice of the Greeks, Ann Arbor, 1994;
de Sélincourt, A., trans., Herodotus: The Histories, Penguin Classics,
Harmondsworth, 1996 [1954];
Livy: The War with Hannibal, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1985
[1965]
Seneca, see Cooper
Shackleton-Bailey, D., trans., Cicero’s Letters to his Friends, Atlanta, 1988;
Cicero, London, 1971
Sharples, R., “Cicero’s Republic and Greek Political Theory,” Polis 5 (1986)
Shepard, M., “Sovereignty at the Crossroads: A Study of Bodin,” Political Science
Quarterly 45.4 (Dec., 1930), pp. 580-603
237
Sherwin-White, A., “Patronage under the Principate: Personal Patronage under the
Early Empire by Robert P. Saller,” Classical Review 33.2 (1983)
Shumer, S., “Machiavelli: Republican Politics and Its Corruption,” Political Theory
7.1 (Feb., 1979), pp. 5-34
Simon, H., Administrative Behavior: A Study of Decision-Making Processes in
Administrative Organization, New York, 1976 [1945],
Sinclair, T., Aristotle: The Politics, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1980 [1962]
Singer, P., ed., A Companion to Ethics, Oxford, 2000, pp. 3-13
Skinner, Q., and R. Price, edd., Machiavelli: The Prince, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2005
[1988]
Slavitt, D. and P. Bovie, edd., Euripides, v.1, Philadelphia, 1998
Sommerstein, A., trans., Aristophanes: Lysistrata, The Acharnians, The Clouds,
Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1973;
Aristophanes: The Knights, Peace, The Birds, The Assemblywomen, Wealth,
Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1978
Stahl, O., “Democracy and Public Employee Morality,” Annals of the Academy of
Political and Social Science 297 (Jan., 1955), pp. 90-7
Stambaugh, J., The Ancient Roman City, Baltimore, 1988
di Stefano Manzella, I., “Accensi velati consulibus apparentes ad sacra: proposta per
la soluzione di un problema dibattuto,” Zeitschrift für Papyrologie und
Epigraphik 101 (1994), pp. 261-79;
238
“Accensi: profilo di una ricerca in corso (a proposito dei <<poteri
collaterali>> nella società romana),” Cahiers du Centre Gustave-Glotz 11
(2000), pp. 223-57
Stewart, J., “Advance or Retreat: From the traditions of Public Administration to the
new public management and beyond,” Public Policy and Administration 13.4
(Winter, 1998), pp. 12-27
Stockton, D., Cicero: A Political Biography, Oxford, 1988 [1971];
The Classical Athenian Democracy, Oxford, 1990
Strauss, L., The Argument and the Action of Plato’s Laws, Chicago, 1977
Strauss, L., and J. Cropsey, edd., History of Political Philosophy, Chicago, 1987
[1963].
Strayer, J., On the Medieval Origins of the Modern State, Princeton, 2005
Strohl, H., “Le droit à la résistance d’après les conceptions protestantes,” Revue
d’histoire et de philosophie religieuses 10 (1930), pp. 126-44
Stroud, R., “An Athenian Law on Silver Coinage,” Hesperia 43 (1974)
Suetonius, see Graves (Penguin)
Suleiman, E., Dismantling Democratic States, Princeton, 2003 Sullivan, V., Machiavelli’s Three Romes, DeKalb, 1996
Syme, R., “Who was Vedius Polio?,” Journal of Roman Studies, 51.1 (1961), pp. 23-
30
Talbert, R., The Senate of Imperial Rome, Princeton, 1984
Talmon, J., The Origins of Totalitarian Democracy, New York, 1970
239
Tanner, J., “Portraits, Power, and Patronage in the Late Roman Republic,” Journal of
Roman Studies 90 (2000), pp. 18-50
Taylor, F., The Principles of Scientific Management, New York, 1967 [1911]
Theophrastus, see Diels (OCT)
Thompson, D., “Moral Responsibility of Public Officials: The Problem of Many
Hands, “ American Political Science Review 74.4 (Dec., 1980), pp. 905-16;
“Ascribing Responsibility to Advisers in Government,” Ethics 93.3 (Apr.,
1983), pp. 546-60
Tierney, B., “’The Prince is Not Bound by the Laws.’ Accursius and the Origins of
the Modern State,” Comparative Studies in Society and History 5.4 (Jul.,
1963), pp. 378-400
Tilly, C., Coercion, Capital, and European States, New York, 1992;
Democracy, Cambridge, 2007
Tocqueville, Ancien Régime, see Mélonio;
Centralisation Administrative, see Jardin (Pléiade)
Todd, S., The Shape of Athenian Law, Oxford, 1993;
Lysias, Oratory of Classical Greece, v. 2, Austin, 2000 Tredennick, H., ed., Plato: The Last Days of Socrates, Penguin Classics,
Harmmondsworth, 1982 [1954],
Tuck, R., Hobbes: Leviathan, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2006 [1991]
Turn, W., “In Defense of Patronage,” Annals of the American Academy of Political
and Social Science 189 (Jan., 1937), pp. 22-8
Veblen, T., Theory of the Leisure Class, New York, 1994 [1899]
240
Vellacott, P., trans., Aeschylus: The Oresteian Trilogy, Penguin Classics,
Harmondsworth,1985 [1956]
Viroli, M., Machiavelli, Oxford, 1998;
“Republic and Politics in Machiavelli and Rousseau,” History of Political
Thought 10.3 (Autumn 1989), pp. 405-20
Vitoria, see Pagden
van Vliet, M., “Weak Legislatures, Failing MPs, and the Collapse of Democracy in
Mali,” African Affairs 113/450 (2014), pp. 45-66
Wahrmund, A., Handwörterbuch der neu-arabischen und deutschen Sprache, v. 1,
Beirut, 1974
Wallace-Hadrill, A., Patronage in Ancient Society, London, 1989;
“Patronage in Roman Society,” in Patronage, pp. 63-87
Waldo, D., The Administrative State: A Study of the Political Theory of American
Public Administration, New York, 1948
Wallach, W., and C. Allen, Moral Machines: Teaching Robots Right from Wrong,
Oxford, 2009
Warner, R., Plutarch: Fall of the Roman Republic, Penguin Classics,
Harmondsworth, 1983 [1958]
Warren, M., “What Does Corruption Mean in a Democracy?,” American Journal of
Political Science 48.2 (2004), pp. 328-43
Warwick, D., A Theory of Public Bureaucracy, Cambridge, 1978 [1975]
Waterfield, R., trans., Aristotle: Physics, Oxford World’s Classics, Oxford, 1999
Watson, A. ed., The Digest of Justinian, Philadelphia, 1998
241
Watts, N., trans., Cicero: The Speeches, v. 11, LCL 158, Cambridge, 1965 [1923]
Watson, B. trans., Han Fei Tzu: Basic Writings, New York 1964
Weber, see Lassman (CTHPT)
Wender, D., trans., Hesiod and Theognis, Penguin Classics, Harmondsworth, 1984
[1973]
Westermann, W., “Between Slavery and Freedom,” American Historical Review,
50.2 (Jan., 1945), pp. 213-27
Whyte, W., The Organization Man, New York, 1956
Williams, W., trans., Cicero: The Letters to his Friends, v. 1, LCL 216, Cambridge
1965 [1927]
Wilson, J., Bureaucracy: What Government Agencies Do and Why They Do It, New
York, 1991
Wilson, W., “The Study of Administration,” Political Science Quarterly 2.2 (June
1887), pp. 197-222
Winner, L., Autonomous Technology: Technics-out-of-Control as a Theme in
Political Thought, Cambridge, 1978;
Wolf, E., “Kinship, Friendship, and Patron-Client Relations in Complex Societies,” in
S. Schmidt, et al., edd., Friends, Followers, and Factions: A Reader in
Political Clientalism, Berkeley, 1977, pp. 167-77
Wolf, W., “Moral Saints,” Journal of Philosophy 79.8 (1982), pp. 419-39
Wood, A., Hegel: Elements of the Philosophy of Right, CTHPT, Cambridge, 2007
[1991]
242
Wood, B., and R. Waterman, “The Dynamics of Political Control of the
Bureaucracy,” American Political Science Review 85.3 (Sep., 1991), pp. 801-
28
Wood, P., “Federal workers tend to be whiter; richer; more liberal,” Baltimore Sun,
October 5, 2014, p. 8
Wood, R., “Ethics in Government as a Problem of Executive Management,” Public
Administration Review 15.1 (Winter, 1955), pp. 1-7
Worthy, J., Big Business and Free Men, New York, 1959
Wrage, A., Bribery and Extortion: Undermining Business, Governments, and
Security, Westport, 2007
Xenophon, see Marchant (LCL)
Young, C., The African Colonial State in Comparative Perspective, New Haven, 1997
Young, The Rise of the Meritocracy, Harmondsworth, 1963 [1958]
Zaidman, L., and P. Pantel, Religion in the Ancient Greek City, Cambridge, 1997
[1992]
Zegart, Flawed by Design: The Evolution of the CIA, JCS, and NSC, Stanford, 1999;
Eyes on Spies, Stanford, 2010
Zetzel, J., ed., Cicero: On the Commonwealth and On the Laws, CTHPT, 2008 [1999]
Ziaja, A., “Hot Oil and Hot Air: The Development of the Nondelegation Doctrine
through the New Deal, A History 1813-1944,” Hastings Con. Law Quarterly
35 (2008), p. 921ff.